Selected quad for the lemma: england_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
england_n henry_n king_n pope_n 16,586 5 6.9376 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A29205 Schisme garded and beaten back upon the right owners shewing that our great controversy about Papall power is not a quaestion of faith but of interest and profit, not with the Church of Rome, but with the Court of Rome : wherein the true controversy doth consist, who were the first innovators, when and where these Papall innovations first began in England : with the opposition that was made against them / by John Bramhall. Bramhall, John, 1594-1663. 1658 (1658) Wing B4232; ESTC R24144 211,258 494

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

order_n not_o a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n they_o make_v he_o a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n to_o all_o particular_a church_n yet_o subject_v he_o to_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o high_a bishop_n and_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o they_o believe_v that_o a_o general_n council_n have_v power_n to_o shake_v his_o candlestick_n and_o remove_v it_o if_o they_o find_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n if_o he_o come_v so_o far_o short_a of_o divine_a right_n in_o his_o fair_a pretension_n by_o what_o right_a will_v he_o seek_v to_o justify_v all_o his_o foul_a usurpation_n and_o enchroachment_n which_o have_v no_o decree_n of_o any_o ecumenical_a council_n to_o warrant_v they_o no_o imperial_a institntion_n to_o authorise_v they_o which_o have_v no_o foundation_n but_o the_o pope_n own_o decretall_n but_o ●_o reserve_v a_o full_a account_n of_o this_o for_o the_o next_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n only_o reader_n be_v please_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o it_o behoove_v mr._n sergeant_n to_o have_v prove_v his_o tradition_n clear_o and_o distinct_o as_o to_o those_o part_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v controvert_v between_o we_o in_o earnest_n with_o the_o universality_n of_o it_o and_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o it_o this_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o attempt_v to_o do_v nor_o in_o deed_n be_v he_o or_o any_o other_o able_a to_o do_v but_o mere_o presume_v it_o and_o slubber_v over_o the_o mater_fw-la in_o deceitful_a general_n sect._n i._n cap._n iii_o we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o the_o last_o part_n of_o his_o demonstration_n which_o be_v the_o minor_a or_o assumtion_n of_o his_o former_a syllogism_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n day_n do_v break_v these_o rule_n of_o unity_n upon_o probable_a reason_n not_o convince_a ground_n which_o be_v the_o main_a question_n he_o shall_v have_v fortify_v with_o proof_n but_o he_o according_a to_o his_o custom_n think_v to_o carry_v it_o with_o confidence_n and_o clamour_n do_v not_o all_o the_o world_n grant_v and_o hold_v that_o king_n henry_n deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n do_v not_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o pretend_a church_n of_o england_n stand_v now_o otherwise_o in_o order_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o it_o do_v in_o henry_n the_o seven_n day_n etc._n etc._n be_v papal_a power_n cast_v out_o before_o be_v it_o not_o in_o actual_a force_n till_o and_o at_o that_o time_n we_o beg_v nothing_o gratis_o but_o begin_v our_o process_n upon_o truth_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o papal_a power_n king_n henry_n do_v cast_v out_o and_o what_o papal_a power_n we_o hold_v out_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v to_o the_o world_n not_o confuse_o but_o distinct_o by_o such_o proof_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v gainsay_v for_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o before_o i_o gird_v myself_o to_o the_o work_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o for_o the_o free_n of_o the_o cause_n from_o future_a cumber_n about_o they_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o his_o two_o circumstance_n that_o we_o do_v it_o only_o upon_o probable_a reason_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o impertinent_a for_o the_o first_o he_o keep_v a_o great_a stir_n and_o bustle_a every_o where_o about_o our_o probable_a reason_n and_o tbe_n nature_n of_o our_o exception_n and_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o i_o have_v omit_v this_o part_n of_o his_o word●_n guileful_o all_o which_o discourse_n be_v superfluous_a and_o impertinent_a 477._o for_o if_o he_o can_v make_v good_a his_o conclusion_n that_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o that_o which_o christ_n himself_o do_v ordain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n no_o reason_n nor_o exception_n can_v be_v sufficient_a or_o so_o demonstrative_a and_o convince_a as_o to_o justify_v a_o wilful_a violation_n of_o christ_n own_o ordination_n 13_o every_o plant_n say_v our_o saviour_n which_o my_o heavenly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v shall_v be_v roo●ed_v up_o but_o if_o this_o be_v christ_n own_o plant_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v plant_v to_o go_v about_o to_o root_v it_o up_o be_v plain_o to_o fight_v against_o god_n we_o renounce_v all_o reason_n and_o all_o exception_n against_o christ_n own_o ordination_n his_o very_a intimation_n that_o we_o may_v do_v what_o we_o do_v upon_o demonstrative_a reason_n be_v a_o implicit_a confession_n that_o it_o be_v not_o against_o christ_n own_o ordination_n there_o be_v no_o need_n why_o i_o shall_v meddle_v which_o my_o own_o exception_n here_o that_o be_v his_o office_n in_o the_o position_n of_o the_o case_n that_o case_n be_v mean_o and_o partial_o state_v which_o be_v state_v but_o on_o one_o side_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v include_v my_o exception_n in_o his_o case_n beside_o i_o be_v sure_a to_o meet_v which_o my_o exception_n in_o every_o section_n and_o therefore_o reserve_v they_o for_o their_o proper-place_n as_o be_v loath_a to_o offend_v the_o reader_n which_o twice_o sodden_a colewort_n but_o let_v he_o not_o fear_v that_o i_o will_v relinquish_v my_o exception_n i_o shall_v maintain_v they_o to_o be_v demonstrative_a of_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n in_o england_n and_o leave_v they_o free_o to_o try_v it_o out_o with_o his_o demonstration_n the_o second_o circumstance_n be_v concern_v the_o time_n when_o the_o breach_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v make_v bear_v in_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o it_o be_v thus_o far_o true_a that_o then_o the_o breach_n be_v declare_v and_o the_o war_n proclaim_v to_o all_o the_o world_n but_o this_o breach_n be_v make_v long_o before_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v bear_v form_n the_o day_n of_o pope_n hildebrand_n for_o about_o four_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o open_a hostility_n indeed_o between_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n but_o they_o be_v still_o upon_o their_o guard_n and_o still_o seek_v to_o gain_v ground_n one_o upon_o another_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o decree_n and_o law_n and_o machination_n of_o those_o time_n a_o breach_n in_o a_o strong_a tower_n be_v long_o make_v before_o the_o wall_n tumble_v visible_o down_o a_o scathfire_n be_v long_o kindle_v before_o it_o break_v out_o in_o a_o universal_a flame_n a_o cronicall_a disease_n be_v long_o gather_v and_o form_v before_o the_o certain_a symptom_n there_o of_o do_v appear_v we_o use_v to_o say_v the_o second_o blow_n make_v the_o fray_n but_o the_o first_o blow_n make_v the_o battery_n and_o the_o guilt_n all_o that_o time_n that_o they_o be_v force_v their_o gross_a usurpation_n upon_o we_o the_o breach_n be_v make_v i_o have_v do_v which_o his_o two_o circumstance_n schtsmatick_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o assumption_n remain_v but_o before_o i_o grapple_v with_o he_o about_o that_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o lay_v down_o four_o ground_n or_o consideration_n so_o indifferent_a that_o no_o rational_a man_n can_v deny_v they_o the_o first_o be_v that_o every_o one_o who_o be_v involve_v material_o in_o a_o schism_n be_v not_o a_o formal_a schismatic_a no_o more_o than_o ●hee_o that_o marry_v after_o long_a expectation_n believe_v and_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o her_o former_a husband_n be_v dead_a be_v a_o formal_a adultress_n or_o then_o he_o who_o be_v draw_v to_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o creature_n by_o some_o misapprehension_n yet_o address_v his_o devotion_n to_o the_o true_a god_n be_v a_o formal_a idolater_n a_o man_n may_v be_v baptisatus_fw-la voto_fw-la as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v baptize_v in_o his_o desire_n and_o god_n almighty_a do_v accept_v it_o why_o may_v he_o not_o as_o well_o communicate_v in_o his_o desire_n and_o be_v accept_v with_o god_n likewise_o if_o s._n austin_n say_v true_a of_o heresy_n that_o 162._o he_o who_o do_v not_o run_v into_o his_o error_n out_o of_o his_o own_o overween_a presumption_n nor_o defend_v it_o pertinaci●asly_o but_o receive_v it_o from_o his_o seduce_a parent_n and_o be_v careful_a to_o search_v out_o the_o truth_n and_o ready_a to_o be_v correct_v if_o he_o find_v it_o out_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v repute_v among_o heretic_n it_o be_v much_o more_o true_a of_o schism_n that_o he_o who_o be_v involve_v in_o schism_n through_o the_o error_n of_o his_o parent_n or_o predecessor_n who_o seek_v careful_o for_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v prepare_v in_o his_o mind_n to_o embrace_v it_o whensoever_o he_o find_v it_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v repute_v a_o schismatic_a this_o very_a bond_n of_o unity_n and_o preparation_n of_o his_o mind_n to_o peace_n be_v a_o implicit_a ●enunciation_n and_o abjuration_n of_o his_o schism_n before_o god_n this_o be_v as_o comfortable_a a_o ground_n for_o ignorant_a roman_a catholic_n as_o for_o any_o person_n that_o i_o know_v who_o be_v hurry_v hoodwink_v in_o to_o
power_n to_o name_n and_o constitute_v two_o and_o thirty_o commissioner_n sixteen_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o other_o sixteen_o of_o the_o peer_n and_o parliament_n to_o view_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o declare_v which_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v retain_v 15._o and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v abrogate_a the_o same_o law_n be_v confirm_v and_o enlarge_v the_o six_o law_n restrein_v the_o payment_n of_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o prescribe_v how_o archbishop_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v elect_v and_o consecrate_v within_o the_o realm_n without_o payment_n of_o any_o thing_n to_o rome_n for_o bull_n and_o pals_n etc._n etc._n 8._o the_o seven_o law_n be_v a_o act_n of_o exoneration_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n from_o exaction_n and_o imposition_n heretofore_o pay_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o pension_n peterpence_n licenses_fw-la dispensation_n confirmation_n faculty_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o have_v licenses_fw-la and_o dispensation_n within_o the_o realm_n without_o further_a sue_v for_o the_o same_o as_o be_v usurpation_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n 1._o the_o eight_o act_n be_v concern_v the_o king_n highness_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o be_v political_a head_n and_o to_o have_v authority_n to_o redress_v all_o error_n heresy_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o external_a coactive_a jurisdiction_n we_o never_o give_v our_o king_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o part_n of_o either_o the_o key_n of_o order_n or_o the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a but_o only_o that_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n which_o their_o predecessor_n have_v always_o enjoy_v 10._o the_o nine_o act_n be_v for_o the_o annex_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n to_o the_o crown_n for_o the_o better_a supportation_n of_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o commouwealth_n the_o ten_o act_n be_v au_fw-fr act_n extinguish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o extirpate_v it_o out_o of_o this_o realm_n that_o be_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n primacy_n of_o order_n not_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n not_o that_o respect_n which_o be_v dne_v to_o he_o as_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a see_n if_o he_o have_v not_o these_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n this_o be_v not_o our_o quarrel_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o we_o do_v not_o envy_v he_o any_o just_a legacy_n of_o christian_a emperor_n or_o general_n counsel_n but_o that_o which_o our_o ancestor_n do_v extinguish_v and_o endeavour_v to_o extirpate_v out_o of_o england_n be_v the_o pope_n external_a coactive_a power_n over_o the_o king_n subject_n in_o foro_fw-la contentioso_fw-la as_o we_o shall_v see_v by_o and_o by_o when_o we_o come_v to_o state_n the_o quarrel_n right_o between_o we_o 5._o after_o this_o act_n there_o follow_v au_fw-fr eleven_o act_n make_v for_o corroborate_n of_o this_o last_o act_n to_o exclude_v the_o usurp_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o both_o these_o act_n be_v back_v with_o new_a oath_n as_o those_o time_n be_v fruitful_a of_o oath_n such_o as_o they_o be_v the_o last_o act_n of_o any_o moment_n 3._o be_v a_o act_n of_o ratification_n of_o the_o king_n majestjes_n style_n of_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v it_o treason_n to_o attempt_v to_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o it_o but_o as_o well_o the_o eight_o act_n which_o give_v the_o king_n that_o title_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o this_o twelve_o act_n which_o make_v it_o treason_n to_o attempt_v to_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o it_o be_v both_o repeal_v and_o never_o be_v restore_v so_o be_v likewise_o the_o ten_o act_n of_o extinguish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o eleven_o act_n make_v for_o corroboration_n of_o that_o act_n with_o both_o their_o oath_n include_v in_o they_o all_o that_o have_v be_v add_v since_o of_o moment_n which_o concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v one_o act_n 1._o restore_a to_o the_o crown_n the_o ancient_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o state_n ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a and_o abolish_n all_o foreign_a power_n repugnant_a to_o the_o same_o here_o be_v no_o power_n create_v in_o the_o crown_n but_o only_o a_o ancient_a jurisdiction_n restore_v here_o be_v no_o foreign_a power_n abolish_v but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n and_o to_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a in_o a_o word_n here_o be_v no_o power_n ascribe_v to_o our_o king_n but_o mere_o political_a and_o coactive_a to_o see_v that_o all_o their_o subject_n do_v their_o duty_n in_o their_o several_a place_n coactive_a power_n be_v one_o of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n this_o may_v have_v be_v express_v in_o word_n lessé_fw-fr subject_n to_o exception_n but_o the_o case_n be_v clear_a the_o grand_a act_n twenty-five_o hen._n 8._o cap._n 12_o the_o injunction_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o article_n of_o our_o chutch_n art_n 37._o do_v all_o proclaim_v that_o this_o power_n be_v mere_o political_a christ_n give_v st._n peter_n a_o commission_n to_o preach_v to_o baptise_v to_o bind_v and_o loose_v in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n but_o where_o do_v he_o give_v he_o a_o commission_n to_o give_v licenses_fw-la to_o grant_v faculty_n to_o make_v law_n to_o dispense_v with_o law_n to_o receive_v appeal_n to_o impose_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n in_o other_o man_n kingdom_n whether_o the_o right_a owner_n will_v or_o no_o 14._o who_o give_v he_o power_n to_o take_v other_o man_n subject_n against_o their_o will_n to_o be_v his_o officer_n and_o apparitor_n that_o be_v more_o power_n than_o christ_n himself_o do_v challenge_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o now_o reader_n take_v a_o stand_v and_o look_v about_o thou_o see_v among_o all_o these_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n if_o thou_o cause_v find_v either_o of_o st._n peter_n key_n or_o his_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n or_o anything_o which_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a that_o have_v no_o further_a influence_n then_o mere_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n no_o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n behold_v a_o pack_n of_o the_o gross_a usurpation_n that_o ever_o be_v hatch_v and_o all_o so_o late_o that_o be_v be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v fore_o any_o of_o his_o pretend_a privilege_n do_v see_v the_o sun_n in_o england_n 13._o observe_v they_o one_o by_o one_o the_o first_o be_v a_o power_n to_o dispense_v with_o english_a subject_n for_o hold_v plurality_n of_o benefice_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o england_n and_o for_o non_fw-fr resident_n contrary_v to_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o realm_n it_o have_v be_v much_o to_o have_v make_v merchandise_n of_o his_o own_o decree_n but_o to_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n non_fw-la auderet_fw-la haec_fw-la facere_fw-la viduae_fw-la mulieri_fw-la he_o dare_v not_o do_v so_o much_o to_o a_o poor_a widow_n woman_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n to_o dispense_v with_o their_o law_n at_o his_o pleasure_n it_o be_v but_o vain_a for_o the_o flower_n of_o our_o kingdom_n to_o assemble_v and_o consult_v about_o healthful_a law_n if_o a_o foreigner_n have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o breach_n of_o they_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o eye_n they_o may_v as_o well_o sit_v they_o downquiet_o &_o fall_v to_o pill_v of_o rush_n the_o second_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v exclude_v out_o of_o england_n be_v the_o pope_n judiciary_n power_n i_o do_v not_o mean_v in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o be_v in_o the_o head_n of_o a_o council_n 3._o yet_o eugeniur_n the_o four_o confess_v that_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v attend_v they_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o i_o mean_v in_o point_n of_o meum_fw-la and_o tuum_fw-la not_o only_o in_o some_o rare_a case_n between_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v less_o intolerable_a and_o have_v have_v more_o show_n of_o justice_n but_o general_o in_o all_o case_n promiscuous_o as_o if_o the_o whole_a nation_n want_v either_o discretion_n or_o law_n to_o determine_v their_o own_o difference_n at_o home_n 12._o without_o the_o help_n of_o the_o roman_a courtier_n tosqueese_v their_o purse_n it_o be_v not_o henry_n the_o eight_o but_o the_o old_a law_n of_o england_n which_o give_v they_o this_o blow_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n the_o three_o branch_n of_o papal_a
power_n which_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v the_o pope_n legislative_a power_n especial_o in_o make_v new_a heresy_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o for_o his_o own_o interest_n prescribe_v the_o punishment_n as_o if_o all_o the_o world_n be_v his_o subject_n mr._n sergeant_n may_v be_v please_v to_o inform_v himself_o better_a that_o the_o pope_n canon_n and_o decretall_n never_o have_v since_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o england_n the_o force_n or_o power_n of_o law_n in_o england_n until_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o nation_n nor_o then_o any_o further_a than_o they_o be_v receive_v the_o four_o branch_n be_v the_o sovereign_a patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n with_o all_o those_o right_n and_o appurtenance_n which_o belong_v thereunto_o as_o to_o convocate_v the_o clergy_n and_o dissolve_v their_o assembly_n to_o exempt_v their_o person_n from_o secular_a judgement_n to_o have_v the_o disposition_n of_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n and_o the_o custodium_fw-la of_o they_o in_o the_o vacancy_n but_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o notorious_a to_o all_o those_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n of_o england_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o manner_n of_o qnestion_n of_o it_o the_o convocation_n be_v always_o call_v and_o dissolve_v by_o the_o absolute_a and_o precise_a mandate_n of_o the_o king_n to_o the_o archbishop_n yea_o even_o when_o the_o archbishop_n be_v the_o pope_n legate_n and_o when_o he_o may_v have_v challenge_v another_o right_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v have_v any_o pretence_n the_o temporaltye_n of_o the_o bishopric_n in_o the_o vacancy_n be_v ever_o sèise_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n until_o he_o grant_v out_o his_o writ_n of_o manum_fw-la amoveas_fw-la or_o oster_n la_fw-fr main_fw-fr if_o ordinary_a patron_n do_v not_o present_a in_o due_a time_n to_o a_o benefice_n it_o devolve_v to_o the_o ordinary_a and_o from_o he_o to_o the_o king_n there_o it_o stay_v nullum_fw-la ●empus_fw-la occurrit_fw-la regi_fw-la the_o five_o privilege_n be_v the_o receive_n of_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n which_o be_v a_o late_a encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n upon_o the_o clergy_n without_o any_o just_a ground_n and_o upon_o that_o score_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n and_o now_o be_v seize_v into_o the_o king_n hand_n towards_o the_o discharge_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a burden_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o last_o perqnisire_n which_o the_o pope_n lose_v be_v all_o the_o profit_n of_o his_o court_n by_o bull_n and_o pall_v and_o pension_n and_o reservation_n and_o exemption_n and_o licenses_fw-la and_o dispensation_n and_o consirmation_n and_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n and_o a_o hundred_o other_o pecuniary_a artifices_fw-la practise_v in_o his_o court_n at_o rome_n and_o in_o his_o legantine_n court_n and_o nunciature_n abroad_o but_o this_o abuse_n be_v so_o foul_a that_o the_o pope_n own_o select_a cardinal_n do_v cryshame_n upon_o it_o as_o much_o as_o we_o and_o lay-down_a this_o genera_fw-la rule_n card._n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o make_v any_o gain_n by_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o key_n see_v we_o have_v the_o firm_a word_n of_o christ_n free_o you_o have_v receive_v free_o give_v etc._n etc._n for_o as_o the_o use_n which_o now_o prevail_v do_v disgrace_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o disturb_v christian_a people_n so_o the_o contrary_a practice_n will_v bring_v much_o honour_n to_o this_o see_v and_o marveilous_o edify_v the_o people_n these_o be_v the_o real_a difference_n between_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n concern_v the_o papacy_n papacy_n all_o these_o altercation_n which_o we_o have_v about_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o the_o key_n give_v to_o st._n peter_n and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o be_v but_o like_a to_o the_o tinkle_n of_o cybeles_a priest_n upon_o their_o cymbal_n on_o purpose_n to_o deaf_a the_o ear_n of_o the_o spectator_n and_o to_o conceal_v the_o cry_n and_o ejulation_n of_o poor_a oppress_a christian_n to_o reduce_v they_o into_o a_o little_a better_a method_n than_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o statute_n the_o main_a quaestious_a be_v or_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o four_o head_n the_o first_o grand_a quaestion_n be_v concern_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o english_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o external_a regiment_n thereof_o this_o have_v four_o subordinate_a branch_n first_o who_o be_v the_o right_a patron_n of_o the_o english_a church_n under_o god_n the_o king_n or_o the_o pope_n second_o who_o have_v power_n to_o convocate_v synod_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n within_o england_n the_o king_n or_o the_o pope_n three_o whether_o the_o pope_n have_v just_o impose_v new_a oath_n upon_o the_o arch_a bishop_n and_o bishop_n four_a whether_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n in_o england_n be_v due_a to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n the_o second_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o pope_n legislative_a power_n whether_o the_o canon_n law_n or_o the_o decretall_n have_v be_v ancient_o esteem_v bind_v law_n in_o england_n or_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o esteem_v except_o they_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o english_a nation_n and_o metriculate_v among_o our_o law_n the_o three_o be_v concern_v his_o judiciary_n power_n whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v receive_v appeal_v from_o england_n by_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o that_o land_n and_o send_v for_o who_o he_o please_v to_o rome_n 2._o whether_o bull_n and_o excommunication_n from_o rome_n can_v be_v lawful_o execute_v in_o england_n except_o the_o king_n give_v leave_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o 3._o whether_o the_o pope_n can_v send_v legate_n and_o set_v up_o legantine_n court_v in_o england_n by_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o that_o realm_n the_o four_o difference_n be_v concern_v the_o pope_n dispensative_a power_n whether_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o england_n 2._o whether_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o his_o dispensation_n in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o difference_n we_o maintain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v guilty_a of_o most_o gross_a usurpation_n sect_n i._o cap_n v._n to_o begin_v with_o the_o first_o belong_v if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o call_v in_o any_o foreign_a subsidiary_n supply_v for_o the_o further_o fortify_v of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n sovereign_a patronage_n under_o god_n of_o the_o church_n within_o his_o territory_n i_o may_v find_v strong_a recruit_n from_o the_o greek_a emperor_n to_o show_v that_o they_o always_o practise_v this_o power_n within_o their_o dominion_n to_o place_v bishop_n in_o vacant_a see_v and_o that_o the_o contrary_a be_v hactenus_fw-la inauditum_fw-la never_o hear_v of_o in_o s._n gregorye_n day_n 78._o to_o they_o i_o may_v add_v the_o french_a and_o german_a emperor_n who_o not_o only_o enjoy_v the_o same_o privilege_n by_o ancient_a custom_n but_o to_o who_o the_o roman_a bishop_n disclaim_v it_o with_o all_o their_o clergy_n judge_n and_o lawyer_n adrian_n the_o first_o to_o charles_n the_o great_a anno_fw-la 774._o and_o leo_n the_o eight_o to_o the_o emperor_n otho_n anno_fw-la 964._o i_o may_v produce_v the_o precedent_n of_o the_o spanish_a monarch_n conc._n tolet_n 12._o cap._n 6._o it_o be_v a_o most_o unreasonable_a thing_n that_o sovereign_a prince_n shall_v be_v trust_v with_o the_o government_n of_o their_o people_n and_o have_v their_o bishop_n who_o must_v participate_v in_o the_o government_n by_o inform_v the_o conscience_n of_o their_o subject_n be_v obtrude_v on_o they_o by_o stranger_n i_o can_v omit_v the_o observation_n of_o a_o learned_a bishop_n that_o quacunque_fw-la ratione_fw-la ad_fw-la pontificatum_fw-la pateret_fw-la ingressus_fw-la nemo_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la cymbae_fw-la gubernacula_fw-la capessebat_fw-la ni_fw-fr prius_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la authoritas_fw-la in●ercessisset_fw-la 9_o by_o what_o way_n soever_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v make_v and_o bellarmine_n mention_v seven_o change_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o choose_v the_o pope_n yet_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o admit_v to_o the_o actual_a government_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v without_o the_o emperor_n confirmation_n but_o our_o case_n be_v strong_a enough_o without_o twist_v any_o foreign_a precedent_n with_o it_o william_n the_o conqueror_n william_n rufus_n and_o henry_n the_o first_o do_v enjoy_v the_o right_n of_o place_v in_o vacant_a see_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o ring_n and_o of_o a_o crosier_n staff_n without_o ever_o seek_v for_o foreign_a approbation_n or_o ordination_n or_o confirmation_n as_o their_o predecessor_n king_n of_o england_n and_o britain_n have_v do_v before_o they_o else_o it_o have_v be_v very_o strange_a the_o roman_a ro●a_n will_v give_v decisive_a sentence_n for_o he_o to_o be_v patron_n of_o a_o church_n who_o first_o build_v it_o and_o endow_v it_o but_o then_o
after_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n be_v e●●luxed_v a_o strange_a time_n to_o set_v up_o a_o divine_a right_n gregory_n the_o seven_o otherwise_o call_v pope_n hildebrand_n and_o after_o he_o pope_n calixtus_n do_v condemn_v all_o investiture_n take_v from_o a_o lay_v hand_n and_o prohibit_v the_o arch_a bishop_n to_o cousecrate_v any_o person_n so_o invest_v praesens_fw-la audivi_fw-la in_o romano_n concilio_n prohiberi_fw-la 1._o say_v anselm_n i_o hear_v it_o with_o my_o own_o ear_n prohibit_v in_o the_o roman_a court_n but_o what_o be_v their_o reason_n i_o believe_v not_o overrigorous_a demonstration_n the_o first_o be_v frequent_a suspicion_n of_o simony_n a_o unheard_a of_o piece_n of_o justice_n to_o take_v away_o a_o hereditary_a right_n for_o suspicion_n of_o a_o personal_a fault_n the_o second_o and_o three_o reason_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o adrian_n the_o four_o to_o frederick_n the_o first_o apud_fw-la goldast_n ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la dii_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o silij_fw-la excelsi_fw-la omnes_fw-la homagium_fw-la requi●is_fw-la fidelitatem_fw-la exigis_fw-la &_o manus_fw-la eorum_fw-la sacratas_fw-la manibus_fw-la tuis_fw-la innectis_fw-la thou_o require_v homage_n of_o those_o who_o be_v god_n and_o all_o the_o child_n of_o the_o most_o high_a thou_o exact_a a_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o knit_a their_o sacred_a hand_n with_o in_o thy_o hand_n a_o strange_a presumption_n in_o a_o sovereign_a prince_n if_o you_o mark_v it_o well_o to_o hold_v his_o subject_n hand_n within_o his_o hand_n while_o he_o be_v swear_v his_o allegiance_n but_o the_o main_a exception_n be_v the_o homage_n or_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n itself_o and_o be_v it_o not_o high_a time_n think_v you_o to_o except_v against_o their_o swear_n of_o fidelity_n to_o their_o native_a prince_n who_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n intend_v to_o exempt_v from_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o to_o make_v they_o turn_v subject_n to_o themselves_o as_o they_o do_v in_o a_o great_a part_n effect_v it_o very_o short_o after_o then_o be_v the_o time_n where_o of_o platina_n speak_v that_o there_o be_v great_a consultation_n about_o the_o homage_n and_o fealty_n and_o oath_n of_o bishop_n 2._o which_o in_o former_a time_n be_v swear_v to_o lay_v man_n be_v they_o so_o indeed_o here_o be_v a_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o the_o pope_n own_o library_n keeper_n indeed_o at_o the_o first_o while_o they_o be_v rob_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jewel_n of_o his_o crown_n they_o preach_v up_o nothing_o but_o free_a election_n 1229._o but_o after_o they_o have_v onte_n seize_v their_o prey_n they_o change_v their_o once_o forthwith_o to_o dei_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la sedis_fw-la graria_fw-la by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostolic_a see_n or_o ex_fw-la plenitudine_fw-la ecclefiasticae_fw-la potestatis_fw-la out_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o when_o this_o bell_n have_v ring_v out_o a_o while_n egypt_n never_o asleep_o bound_v more_o with_o caterpillar_n than_o our_o native_a country_n do_v with_o provision_n and_o reservation_n and_o pension_n with_o all_o thenhellish_a art_n of_o sublimate_v simony_n then_o our_o best_a dignity_n and_o benefice_n be_v fill_v with_o stranger_n who_o can_v not_o speak_v a_o english_a word_n nor_o do_v ever_o tread_v upon_o english_a ground_n daily_o more_o and_o more_o until_o these_o well_o choose_a pastor_n who_o know_v how_o to_o shear_v their_o flock_n though_o they_o do_v not_o know_v how_o to_o feed_v they_o 1345._o receive_v yearly_o out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n more_o theu_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o crown_n he_o be_v very_o simple_a who_o shall_v think_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o lick_v their_o own_o finger_n there_o remain_v but_o one_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v to_o stick_v the_o gild_n of_o this_o intolerable_a usurpation_n undeniable_o upon_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o s●ew_v that_o the_o investiture_n of_o bishop_n be_v the_o undoubted_a right_n of_o the_o crown_n this_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n both_o in_o our_o most_o authentic_a historiographer_n and_o record_n if_o i_o have_v the_o mean_n to_o producethen_n and_o also_o in_o our_o ancient_a law_n publish_v long_o since_o to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n and_o these_o not_o enactive_a of_o new_a law_n but_o declarative_a of_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n first_o for_o our_o history_n gervasius_n dorobernensis_n relate_v that_o lanfrank_n desire_v of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n the_o patronage_n of_o the_o abbey_n of_o s._n austin_n but_o the_o king_n answer_v se_fw-la velle_fw-la omnes_fw-la baculos_fw-la pastorales_fw-la in_o manu_fw-la tenere_fw-la that_o he_o will_v keep_v all_o the_o crosier_n staffe_n that_o be_v the_o investiture_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n the_o same_o be_v testify_v anselm_n himself_o by_o one_o who_o authority_n can_v be_v doubt_v of_o he_o anselm_n after_o the_o manner_n and_o example_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v induct_v according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o land_n 20._o and_o do_v homage_n to_o the_o king_n homo_fw-la regis_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la as_o lanfranke_n his_o predecessor_n in_o the_o archbishopric_n of_o canterbury_n in_o his_o time_n have_v do_v 18._o and_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o investiture_n be_v relate_v how_o the_o bishop_n pull_v he_o and_o hale_v he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n to_o the_o king_n bedside_n william_n rufus_n where_o he_o lay_v sick_a and_o help_v to_o thrust_v the_o crosier_n staff_n by_o force_n into_o his_o hand_n yet_o all_o that_o time_n though_o anselm_n have_v many_o other_o pretence_n he_o have_v no_o exception_n against_o investiture_n by_o a_o lay_v hand_n but_o short_o after_o it_o grow_v to_o such_o a_o height_n and_o anselm_n be_v the_o chief_a stickler_n in_o it_o that_o william_n the_o agent_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o first_o protest_v open_o to_o pope_n paschall_n whatsoever_o be_v say_v on_o this_o side_n or_o on_o that_o 73._o i_o will_v have_v all_o man_n here_o present_a to_o know_v that_o my_o lord_n the_o king_n of_o england_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o his_o investiture_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o kingdom_n to_o who_o pope_n paschall_n answer_v as_o resolute_o but_o not_o so_o just_o know_v thou_o i_o speak_v it_o before_o god_n that_o paschall_n the_o pope_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o keep_v they_o without_o punishment_n no_o not_o for_o the_o redemtion_n of_o his_o head_n neither_o be_v this_o the_o case_n of_o anselm_n or_o lanfranke_n alone_o but_o the_o common_a case_n of_o all_o bishop_n in_o those_o day_n hear_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o same_o author_n 2._o to_o conclude_v the_o very_a cause_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o king_n and_o anselm_n seem_v a_o new_a thing_n or_o innovation_n to_o this_o our_o age_n and_o unheard_a of_o to_o the_o english_a from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o norman_n begin_v to_o reign_v that_o i_o say_v not_o soon_o for_o from_o the_o time_n that_o william_n the_o norman_a conquer_v that_o land_n no_o bishop_n or_o abbat_n be_v make_v before_o anselm_n who_o do_v not_o first_o do_v homage_n to_o the_o king_n and_o from_o his_o hand_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o a_o crosier_n staff_n receive_v the_o investiture_n to_o his_o bishopric_n or_o abbacy_n except_o two_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n who_o be_v surrogate_v to_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o induct_v by_o he_o by_o the_o king_n concession_n yea_o by_o his_o favour_n so_o do_v anselm_n himself_o though_o he_o seek_v afterward_o to_o wave_v it_o and_o though_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o speak_v out_o that_o i_o say_v not_o soon_o yet_o he_o may_v have_v say_v soon_o and_o other_o do_v say_v soon_o as_o ingulph_n the_o abbot_n of_o crowland_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o conqueror_n for_o many_o year_n pass_v there_o have_v be_v no_o free_a election_n of_o prelate_n 8._o but_o the_o king_n court_n do_v confer_v all_o dignity_n according_a to_o their_o pleasure_n by_o a_o ring_n and_o by_o a_o crosier_n and_o this_o custom_n have_v hold_v not_o only_o for_o many_o year_n but_o for_o many_o age_n king_n edgar_n do_v grant_v to_o the_o monk_n of_o glastenbury_n the_o free_a election_n of_o their_o abbot_n for_o ever_o but_o he_o reserve_v to_o himself_o and_o to_o his_o heir_n the_o power_n to_o invest_v the_o brother_n elect_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o pastoral_n staff_n thus_o for_o our_o history_n now_o for_o our_o law_n where_o of_o i_o shall_v need_v to_o cite_v but_o three_o the_o first_o be_v the_o statute_n or_o assize_n or_o memorial_n of_o clarendon_n contain_v part_n of_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o realm_n make_v in_o the_o general_n assembly_n of_o the_o kingdom_n king_n bishop_n peer_n to_o which_o they_o give_v both_o their_o oath_n assertory_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o promissory_a for_o performance_n of_o it_o the_o
be_v the_o keeper_n of_o both_o the_o table_n and_o we_o say_v that_o for_o the_o first_o table_n the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v his_o interpreter_n three_o as_o we_o question_v not_o the_o pope_n legislative_a or_o coactive_a power_n over_o his_o own_o subject_n so_o we_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n whether_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o as_o a_o consequent_a thereof_o a_o right_a if_o he_o will_v content_v himself_o with_o it_o to_o summon_v counsel_n when_o and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n sovereign_n to_o do_v it_o and_o to_o join_v with_o other_o bishop_n in_o make_v spiritual_a law_n or_o canon_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n make_v 25._o and_o such_o as_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n make_v before_o there_o be_v christian_n emperor_n but_o then_o those_o canon_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o those_o canon_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o apostolical_a college_n the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o brethren_n not_o the_o law_n of_o s._n peter_n then_o their_o law_n have_v no_o coactive_a obligation_n to_o compel_v christian_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n of_o the_o church_n against_o their_o will_n or_o further_o than_o they_o be_v please_v to_o submit_v themselves_o all_o exterior_a coactive_a power_n be_v from_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o therefore_o when_o and_o where_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v christian_n to_o they_o it_o proper_o belong_v to_o summon_v counsel_n and_o to_o confirm_v their_o canon_n thereby_o make_v they_o become_v law_n because_o sovereign_a prince_n only_o have_v power_n to_o licence_n and_o command_v their_o subject_n to_o assemble_v to_o assign_v fit_a place_n for_o their_o assemble_v to_o protect_v they_o in_o their_o assembly_n and_o to_o give_v a_o coactive_a power_n to_o their_o law_n without_o which_o they_o may_v do_v their_o best_a to_o drive_v away_o wolf_n and_o to_o oppose_v heritick_n but_o it_o must_v be_v with_o such_o arm_n as_o christ_n have_v furnish_v they_o withal_o that_o be_v persuasion_n prayer_n tear_n and_o at_o the_o most_o separate_a they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ._n the_o controversy_n be_v then_o about_o new_a upstart_n papal_a law_n either_o make_v at_o rome_n such_o be_v the_o decretall_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o boniface_n the_o eight_o clement_n the_o five_o and_o succeed_a pope_n or_o make_v in_o england_n by_o papal_a legate_n as_o otho_n and_o othobone_n whether_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n have_v power_n to_o make_v any_o such_o law_n to_o bind_v english_a subject_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o obey_v they_o against_o their_o will_n the_o king_n of_o england_n contradict_v it_o the_o first_o time_n that_o ever_o any_o canon_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o legislative_a legate_n of_o he_o be_v attempt_v to_o be_v obtrude_v upon_o the_o king_n or_o church_n of_o england_n be_v eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n the_o first_o law_n be_v the_o law_n against_o take_v investiture_n to_o bishopric_n from_o a_o lay_v hand_n and_o the_o first_o legate_n that_o ever_o preside_v in_o a_o english_a synod_n be_v johannes_n cremensis_n of_o both_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v former_o observe_v reader_n and_o be_v astonish_v if_o thou_o have_v so_o much_o faith_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v pretend_v to_o a_o legislative_a power_n over_o british_a and_o english_a subject_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o yet_o never_o offer_v to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n for_o above_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n it_o remain_v now_o to_o prove_v evident_o that_o henry_n the_o eight_o by_o his_o statute_n make_v for_o that_o purpose_n do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n any_o privilege_n which_o he_o and_o his_o predecessor_n have_v hold_v by_o inheritance_n from_o st._n peter_n and_o be_v peaceable_o possess_v of_o for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n peter_n be_v dead_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v first_o invade_v the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o predecessor_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v enjoy_v peaceable_o until_o the_o day_n of_o william_n rufus_n nemine_fw-la contradicente_fw-la and_o that_o the_o king_n law_n be_v evermore_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a law_n and_o obligatory_a to_o the_o english_a subject_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n be_v never_o esteem_v to_o be_v bind_v law_n in_o england_n except_o they_o be_v incorporate_v in_o to_o our_o law_n by_o the_o king_n and_o church_n or_o kingdom_n of_o england_n whence_o it_o follow_v by_o irrefragable_a consequence_n that_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v not_o the_o schismatic_a in_o this_o particular_a but_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o that_o maintain_v he_o or_o adhere_v to_o he_o in_o his_o usurpation_n first_o for_o the_o king_n right_a to_o make_v law_n not_o only_o concern_v the_o outward_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n but_o even_o concern_v the_o key_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n so_o far_o as_o to_o oblige_v they_o who_o be_v trust_v with_o that_o power_n by_o the_o church_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n it_o be_v so_o evident_a to_o every_o one_o who_o have_v but_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o our_o english_a law_n that_o to_o bestow_v labour_n on_o prove_v it_o be_v to_o bring_v owl_n to_o athens_n their_o law_n be_v extant_a make_v in_o all_o age_n concern_v faith_n and_o good_a manner_n heresy_n holy_a order_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n bishop_n priest_n monk_n the_o privilege_n and_o revenue_n of_o holy_a church_n marriage_n divorce_n simony_n the_o pope_n his_o sentemce_n his_o oppression_n and_o usurpation_n prohibition_n appeal_v from_o eeclesiasticall_a judge_n and_o general_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a cognifance_n and_o this_o in_o those_o time_n which_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o to_o have_v be_v catholic_n more_o than_o this_o they_o inhibit_v the_o pope_n own_o legate_n to_o attempt_v to_o decree_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o king_n crown_n and_o dignity_n and_o if_o they_o approve_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n 1227._o they_o confirm_v they_o by_o their_o royal_a authority_n and_o so_o incorporate_v they_o into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o english_a law_n second_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n never_o have_v the_o force_n of_o law_n in_o england_n without_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o king_n witness_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v but_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o day_n to_o any_o one_o who_o read_v the_o eleven_o the_o six_o and_o forty_o and_o the_o one_o and_o sixty_v chapter_n that_o they_o be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n but_o some_o time_n after_o perhaps_o not_o by_o innocent_a the_o three_o but_o by_o some_o succeed_a pope_n for_o the_o author_n of_o they_o do_v distinguish_v himself_o express_o from_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v well_o provide_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n etc._n etc._n but_o because_o that_o statute_n be_v not_o observe_v in_o many_o church_n we_o confirm_v the_o foresay_a statute_n do_v add_v etc._n etc._n again_o it_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v prohibit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o inhibit_v the_o same_o moro_n strong_o etc._n etc._n how_o soever_o they_o be_v the_o pope_n decree_n but_o never_o be_v receive_v as_o law_n in_o england_n as_o we_o see_v evident_o by_o the_o three_o chapter_n that_o the_o good_n of_o clergiman_n be_v convict_v of_o heresy_n be_v forfeit_v to_o the_o church_n that_o all_o officer_n secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a shall_v take_v a_o oath_n at_o their_o admission_n into_o their_o office_n to_o their_o power_n to_o purge_v their_o territory_n from_o heresy_n that_o if_o a_o temporal_a lord_n do_v neglect_v be_v admonish_v by_o the_o church_n to_o purge_v his_o land_n from_o heresy_n he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o if_o he_o contemn_v to_o satisfy_v within_o a_o year_n the_o pope_n shall_v absolve_v his_o subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o by_o the_o three_o and_o forty_o chapter_n that_o no_o ec●●●siasticall_a person_n be_v compel_v to_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o a_o lay_v man_n and_o by_o the_o six_o and_o forty_o chapter_n that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v free_a from_o tax_n we_o never_o have_v any_o such_o law_n all_o good_n forfeit_v in_o that_o kind_n be_v ever_o confiscate_v to_o the_o king_n we_o never_o have_v any_o such_o oath_n every_o one_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o himself_o we_o know_v
no_o such_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n in_o our_o law_n with_o we_o clergyman_n do_v ever_o pay_v subsidy_n and_o tax_n as_o well_o as_o lay_v man_n this_o be_v one_o liberty_n which_o england_n have_v not_o to_o admit_v of_o the_o pope_n law_n unless_o they_o like_v they_o a_o second_o liberty_n of_o england_n be_v to_o reject_v the_o pope_n law_n in_o plain_a term_n 9_o the_o pope_n make_v a_o law_n for_o the_o legitimation_n of_o child_n bear_v afore_o matrimony_n as_o well_o as_o those_o bear_v in_o matrimony_n the_o bishop_n move_v the_o lord_n in_o parliament_n that_o they_o will_v give_v their_o consent_n to_o the_o common_a order_n of_o the_o church_n but_o all_o the_o earl_n and_o baron_n answer_v with_o one_o voice_n that_o they_o will_v not_o change_v the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v use_v and_o approve_v the_o pope_n legislation_n can_v not_o make_v a_o law_n in_o england_n without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o three_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o they_o like_v their_o own_o old_a law_n better_o than_o the_o pope_n new_a law_n a_o three_o liberty_n of_o england_n be_v to_o give_v a_o legislative_a interpretation_n to_o the_o pope_n law_n which_o the_o pope_n never_o intend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o a_o constitution_n make_v at_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n exclude_v bigamist_n man_n twice_o marry_v from_o the_o privilege_n of_o clergy_n that_o be_v that_o shall_v marry_v the_o second_o time_n de_fw-fr futuro_fw-la but_o the_o parliament_n make_v a_o act_n that_o the_o constitution_n shall_v be_v understand_v on_o this_o wise_a that_o whether_o they_o be_v bigamist_n before_o the_o constitution_n or_o after_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o prelate_n but_o justice_n shall_v be_v execute_v upon_o they_o as_o upon_o other_o lay_v people_n ejus_fw-la est_fw-la legem_fw-la interpretari_fw-la cujus_fw-la est_fw-la condere_fw-la they_o that_o can_v give_v a_o law_n a_o new_a sense_n may_v abrogate_v it_o if_o they_o please_v a_o four_o liberty_n of_o england_n be_v to_o call_v the_o pope_n law_n usurpation_n encroachment_n mischief_n contrary_a to_o and_o destructive_a of_o the_o municipal_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n derogatory_n to_o the_o king_n regality_n and_o to_o punish_v such_o of_o their_o subject_n as_o shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o obey_v they_o with_o imprisonment_n with_o confiscation_n of_o their_o good_n and_o land_n with_o outlaw_v they_o and_o put_v they_o out_o of_o the_o king_n protection_n witness_v all_o those_o noble_a law_n of_o provisor_n and_o praemunire_n which_o we_o may_v true_o call_v the_o palladium_n of_o england_n which_o preserve_v it_o from_o be_v swallow_v up_o in_o that_o vast_a gulf_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n 6._o make_v by_o edward_n the_o first_o edward_z the_o three_o richard_n the_o second_o and_o henry_n the_o four_o all_o those_o collation_n and_o reservation_n and_o provision_n and_o privilege_n and_o sentence_n which_o be_v condemn_v in_o those_o statute_n be_v all_o ground_v upon_o the_o popes●lawes_n and_o bull_n and_o decree_n which_o our_o ancestor_n entertain_v as_o they_o deserve_v othobon_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o england_n by_o the_o command_n of_o vrban_n the_o five_o make_v a_o constitution_n for_o the_o endowment_n of_o vicar_n in_o appropriation_n but_o it_o prevail_v not_o whereas_o our_o king_n by_o two_o act_n of_o parliament_n do_v easy_o effect_v it_o no_o ecclesiastical_a act_n be_v impossible_a to_o they_o who_o have_v a_o legislative_a power_n 12._o but_o many_o ecclesiastical_a act_n be_v beyond_o the_o sphere_n of_o the_o pope_n activity_n in_o england_n the_o king_n can_v make_v a_o spiritual_a corporation_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o the_o king_n can_v exempt_v from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o ordinary_a but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o the_o king_n can_v convert_v secular_o into_o regulars_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o 4._o the_o king_n can_v grant_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o cistercian_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o the_o king_n can_v appropriate_v church_n but_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o our_o law_n never_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n plenitude_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n 4._o which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o legislation_n euphemius_n object_v to_o gelasius_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o can_v not_o condemn_v acatius_n faustum_n ab_fw-la uno_fw-la non_fw-la potuisset_fw-la damnari_fw-la gelasius_n answer_v that_o he_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o that_o his_o predecessor_n be_v but_o the_o executor_n of_o a_o old_a law_n and_o not_o the_o author_n of_o a_o new_a this_o be_v all_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v challenge_v to_o be_v executor_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o not_o single_a law_n maker_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o dardania_n he_o attribute_v much_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o a_o council_n but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o make_v new_a law_n or_o canon_n but_o in_o execute_v old_a as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n and_o chrysostome_n the_o privilege_n of_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n austin_n in_o england_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n 92._o be_v condemn_v as_o null_n or_o of_o no_o validity_n because_o they_o be_v not_o ratify_v by_o the_o king_n and_o approve_v by_o the_o peer_n 6._o william_n the_o conqueror_n will_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n within_o his_o dominion_n to_o receive_v the_o pope_n for_o apostolical_a bishop_n but_o by_o his_o command_n nor_o to_o receive_v his_o letter_n by_o any_o mean_n ●nlesse_a they_o be_v first_o show_v to_o he_o it_o be_v likely_a this_o be_v in_o a_o time_n of_o schism_n when_o there_o be_v more_o pope_n than_o one_o but_o be_v show_v how_o the_o king_n do_v interest_n himself_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o further_o influence_n upon_o his_o subject_n then_o he_o think_v fit_a he_o who_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o receive_v the_o pope_n letter_n without_o his_o leave_n will_v much_o less_o suffer_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o pope_n law_n without_o leave_n and_o in_o his_o prescript_n to_o remigius_n bishop_n of_o lincolne●_n know_v you_o all_o earl_n and_o viscount_n that_o i_o ●ave_n judge_v that_o the_o episcopal_a or_o ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o have_v be_v of_o force_n until_o my_o time_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v not_o well_o constitute_v according_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o holy_a canon_n shall_v be_v amend_v in_o the_o common_a assembly_n and_o with_o the_o counsel_n of_o my_o arch-bishop_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o abbat_n and_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o my_o kingdom_n he_o need_v not_o the_o help_n of_o any_o foreign_a legislation_n for_o amend_v ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n now_o let_v we_o see_v whether_o the_o libertye_n of_o france_n be_v the_o same_o with_o our_o english_a privilege_n the_o second_o liberty_n be_v this_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o absolute_a in_o franee_n if_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_a than_o it_o be_v not_o single_o legislative_a but_o limit_v and_o restrain_v by_o the_o canon_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v limit_v by_o ancient_a canon_n than_o it_o have_v no_o power_n to_o abrogate_v ancient_a canon_n by_o new_a canon_n their_o ancient_a canon_n be_v their_o ecclesiastical_a law_n as_o well_o as_o we_o and_o those_o must_v be_v receive_v in_o that_o kingdom_n they_o may_v be_v excellent_a adviser_n without_o reception_n but_o they_o be_v no_o law_n without_o public_a reception_n canon_n be_v no_o canon_n either_o in_o england_n or_o in_o france_n further_a than_o they_o be_v receive_v the_o three_o liberty_n be_v no_o command_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o pope_n papal_a decree_n be_v his_o chief_a command_n can_v free_v the_o french_a clergy_n from_o their_o obligation_n to_o obey_v the_o command_n of_o their_o sovereign_n but_o if_o papal_a power_n can_v abrogate_v the_o ancient_a law_n of_o france_n it_o do_v free_a their_o clergy_n from_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o sovereign_a prince_n the_o sixteen_o liberty_n be_v the_o court_n of_o parliament_n have_v power_n to_o declare_v null_n and_o void_a the_o pope_n bull_n when_o they_o be_v find_v contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n or_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a the_o twenty_o liberty_n the_o pope_n can_v exempt_v any_o church_n monastery_n or_o ecclesiastical_a body_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o their_o ordinary_n nor_o erect_v bishopric_n into_o arch_a bishopric_n nor_o unite_v they_o nor_o divide_v they_o without_o the_o king_n licence_n england_n and_o france_n as_o touch_v their_o liberty_n walk_v hand_n in_o hand_n to_o conclude_v the_o pope_n
legislative_a power_n in_o england_n be_v a_o gross_a usurpation_n and_o be_v suppress_v before_o it_o be_v well_o form_v but_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o old_a rule_n break_v ice_n in_o one_o place_n and_o it_o will_v crack_v in_o more_o if_o they_o do_v confess_v one_o error_n they_o shall_v be_v suspect_v of_o many_o if_o their_o infallibility_n be_v lose_v all_o be_v go_v and_o therefore_o they_o resolve_v to_o bear_v it_o out_o with_o head_n and_o shoulder_n and_o in_o place_n of_o disclaim_v a_o single_a power_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o to_o give_v they_o a_o coactive_a obligation_n in_o exterior_a court_n they_o challenge_v a_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n some_o say_v ordinary_o other_o extraordinary_o some_o say_v direct_o other_a indirect_o to_o make_v and_o abrogate_v political_a law_n throughout_o christendom_n against_o the_o will_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n they_o who_o seem_v most_o moderate_a and_o cautelous_a among_o they_o be_v bad_a enough_o and_o deserve_v right_a well_o to_o have_v their_o work_n insert_v into_o the_o rebel_n catechism_n 6._o if_o a_o civil_a law_n be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o subject_n and_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o abrogate_v it_o if_o another_o civil_a law_n be_v healthful_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o the_o temporal_a prince_n will_v not_o enact_v it_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o spiritual_a prince_n may_v abrogate_v the_o one_o and_o establish_v the_o other_o for_o civil_a power_n be_v inferior_a and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o spiritual_a power_n and_o the_o ecclesiastic_a republic_n ought_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a to_o attain_v its_o end_n but_o the_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o thing_n temporal_a be_v necessary_a to_o attain_v spiritual_a end_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o choose_v a_o infidel_n or_o heretical_a prince_n but_o it_o be_v the_o same_o danger_n or_o damage_n to_o choose_v one_o who_o be_v no_o christian_a and_o to_o tolerate_v one_o who_o be_v no_o christian_a and_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o he_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v tolerate_v or_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o good_a time_n from_o these_o premise_n we_o may_v well_o expect_v a_o necessary_a collusion_n who_o ever_o see_v such_o a_o rope_n of_o sand_n so_o incoherent_a to_o itself_o and_o consist_v of_o such_o heterogeneous_a part_n compose_v altogether_o of_o mistake_n sure_o a_o man_n may_v conclude_v that_o either_o nocte_fw-la pinxit_fw-la the_o learned_a author_n paint_v this_o cypress_n tree_n in_o the_o night_n or_o he_o have_v a_o pitiful_a penurious_a cause_n that_o will_v afford_v no_o better_a proof_n but_o i_o hope_v the_o quarrel_n be_v dead_a or_o die_a and_o with_o it_o much_o of_o that_o animosity_n which_o it_o help_v to_o raise_v in_o the_o world_n at_o least_o i_o must_v do_v my_o adversary_n in_o this_o cause_n that_o right_a i_o find_v they_o not_o guilty_a of_o it_o let_v it_o die_v and_o the_o memory_n of_o it_o be_v extinguish_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o sect._n i._n cap._n vii_o so_o i_o pass_v over_o from_o the_o pope_n legislative_a power_n england_n to_o his_o judiciary_n power_n perhaps_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v to_o find_v something_o here_o of_o that_o great_a controversy_n between_o protestant_n and_o papist_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o last_o the_o high_a the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n with_o a_o council_n or_o without_o a_o council_n for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o so_o well_o agree_v at_o home_n who_o this_o judge_n be_v all_o say_v it_o be_v the_o church_n but_o in_o determine_v what_o church_n it_o be_v they_o differ_v as_o much_o as_o they_o and_o we_o some_o say_v it_o be_v the_o essential_a church_n by_o reception_n whatsoever_o the_o universal_a church_n receive_v be_v infallible_o true_a other_o ●ay_v it_o be_v the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v a_o general_n council_n other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o virtual_a church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o virtual_a church_n and_o the_o representative_a church_n together_o that_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n last_o other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o any_o council_n either_o general_n or_o patriarchall_a or_o provincial_n or_o i_o think_v his_o college_n of_o cardinal_n may_v serve_v the_o turn_n and_o concern_v his_o infallibility_n all_o man_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o in_o his_o tenet_n as_o he_o be_v be_v a_o private_a doctor_n but_o not_o in_o his_o definition_n second_o the_o most_o man_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o may_v err_v in_o his_o definition_n if_o he_o define_v alone_o without_o some_o council_n either_o general_a or_o particular_a three_o other_o go_v yet_o high_o that_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n with_o a_o particular_a council_n may_v define_v erroneous_o or_o heretical_o but_o not_o with_o a_o general_n council_n last_o many_o of_o they_o which_o go_v along_o with_o other_o for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n do_v it_o upon_o a_o condition_n si_fw-mi maturus_fw-la procedat_fw-la &_o consilium_fw-la audiat_fw-la aliorum_fw-la pastorum_fw-la if_o he_o proeee_v mature_o and_o hear_v the_o counsel_n of_o other_o pastor_n 2._o indeed_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v demand_v whether_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v if_o he_o define_v rash_o without_o doubt_n they_o will_v all_o answer_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o define_v rash_o but_o this_o be_v mere_a presumption_n without_o any_o colour_n of_o proof_n i_o appeal_v to_o every_o rational_a man_n of_o what_o communion_n soever_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o who_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o proceed_v mature_o upon_o due_a advice_n do_v presume_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v proceed_v immature_o or_o without_o due_a advice_n or_o not_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v proceed_v rash_o and_o without_o due_a advice_n otherwise_o the_o condition_n be_v vain_o and_o superfluous_o add_v frustra_fw-la fit_a perplura_fw-la quod_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la per_fw-la pauciora_fw-la but_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o have_v nothing_o concern_v this_o question_n nor_o concern_v any_o jurisdiction_n mere_o spiritual_a in_o all_o the_o statute_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o they_o do_v all_o intend_v coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o although_o nothing_o which_o he_o say_v do_v constrain_v i_o i_o will_v observe_v my_o wont_a ingenuity_n we_o give_v the_o supreme_a judicature_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o spiritual_a censure_n which_o be_v coactive_a only_o in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n but_o if_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n shall_v approve_v or_o confirm_v the_o act_n of_o a_o general_a council_n than_o they_o have_v a_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n both_o political_a and_o ecclesiastical_a there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o long_o after_o more_o than_o a_o general_a council_n right_o call_v right_o proceed_v or_o in_o defect_n of_o that_o a_o free_a occidental_a council_n as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v but_o then_o we_o will_v have_v the_o bishop_n to_o renounce_v that_o oath_n which_o have_v be_v obtrude_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o council_n to_o declare_v it_o void_a i._o a._n bishop_n etc._n etc._n will_v be_v faithful_a to_o st._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a apostolical_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o our_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v be_v a_o assistant_n to_o retain_v and_o to_o defend_v the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o the_o royalty_n of_o st._n peter_n where_o this_o oath_n be_v esteem_v obligatory_a i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o there_o can_v be_v a_o free_a council_n but_o i_o retire_v myself_o to_o that_o which_o concern_v our_o present_a question_n and_o the_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o eyghth_n concern_v judiciary_n power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o branch_n of_o this_o three_o usurpation_n s_o england_n whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v receive_v appeal_v from_o england_n and_o send_v for_o what_o english_a subject_n he_o please_v to_o rome_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n the_o first_o precedent_n and_o the_o only_a precedent_n that_o we_o have_v of_o any_o appeal_v out_o of_o england_n to_o rome_n for_o the_o first_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v that_o of_o wilfrid_n archbishop_n of_o york_n though_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n that_o be_v rather_o a_o equitable_a than_o a_o legal_a appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o only_a bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n in_o the_o west_n and_o a_o honourable_a arbitrator_n and_o a_o faithful_n depositary_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o as_o a_o superior_a judge_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o adverse_a party_n summon_v to_o rome_n nor_o any_o witness_n produce_v both_o
which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v do_v in_o a_o legal_a appeal_v but_o the_o success_n be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n interest_n and_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o king_n church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n so_o unanimous_a that_o they_o can_v not_o assent_v to_o the_o pope_n legation_n because_o it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o a_o person_n twice_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o the_o english_a shall_v be_v restore_v upon_o the_o pope_n letter_n that_o england_n be_v never_o trouble_v with_o any_o more_o appeal_n to_o rome_n until_o after_o the_o conquest_n neither_o dare_v the_o pope_n send_v any_o bull_n or_o mandate_n then_o but_o a_o plain_a letter_n the_o next_o appellant_n be_v anselm_n a_o stranger_n who_o know_v not_o the_o liberty_n of_o england_n in_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o as_o successless_a as_o wilfrid_n have_v be_v 1._o will_v you_o trust_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o king_n and_o i_o know_v not_o why_o a_o king_n shall_v not_o be_v trust_v for_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o own_o kingdom_n hear_v king_n henry_n the_o first_o the_o son_n of_o the_o conqueror_n it_o be_v a_o custom_n of_o my_o kingdom_n institute_v by_o my_o father_n institute_v indeed_o but_o not_o first_o institute_v for_o it_o be_v a_o old_a saxon_a custom_n that_o no_o pope_n be_v appeal_v to_o without_o the_o licence_n of_o the_o king_n another_o law_n of_o the_o same_o king_n be_v 31_o by_o all_o mean_n we_o discharge_v foreign_a judgement_n if_o you_o will_v not_o trust_v the_o king_n trust_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n upon_o their_o oath_n in_o the_o day_n of_o henry_n his_o grandchild_n the_o first_o english_a custom_n recite_v in_o the_o assize_n of_o clarendon_n be_v this_o 1164._o that_o all_o appeal_v in_o england_n must_v proceed_v regular_o from_o the_o archdeacon_n to_o the_o bishop_n from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o arch_a bishop_n and_o if_o the_o arch_a bishop_n fail_v to_o do_v justice_n the_o last_o complaint_n must_v be_v to_o the_o king_n to_o give_v order_n for_o redress_v 113._o if_o we_o will_v not_o trust_v the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n yet_o l●t_v we_o trust_v the_o pope_n himself_o thus_o paschal_n the_o second_o write_v to_o our_o henry_n the_o first_o the_o pope_n nuntioe_n and_o letter_n do_v find_v no_o reception_n within_o thy_o jurisdiction_n there_o be_v no_o complaint_n from_o those_o part_n no_o appeal_v be_v destine_v to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n 119._o the_o abbot_n of_o thorney_n find_v this_o true_a by_o experience_n who_o lie_v long_o in_o prison_n notwithstanding_o he_o appeal_v to_o rome_n the_o case_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o i_o shall_v not_o cite_v one_o authority_n more_o in_o it_o but_o only_o one_o of_o our_o statute_n law_n make_v not_o only_o by_o the_o assent_n as_o be_v usnall_a but_o upon_o the_o prayer_n and_o grievous_a and_o clamorous_a complaint_n of_o the_o peer_n and_o commons_o 3●_n that_o because_o people_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n to_o answer_v thing_n the_o cognisance_n whereof_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n court_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n court_n be_v impeach_v in_o another_o court_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o disinherit_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o crown_n and_o the_o undo_n ●and_v destruction_n of_o the_o common_a law_n of_o the_o land_n therefore_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o whosoever_o shall_v draw_v a_o man_n out_o of_o the_o realm_n in_o plea_n if_o he_o do_v not_o appear_v upon_o summons_n and_o conform_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o king_n court_n he_o shall_v forfeit_v land_n and_o good_n be_v outlaw_v and_o imprison_v against_o such_o fortification_n ground_v upon_o prescription_n and_o imperial_a law_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n will_v make_v no_o great_a battery_n take_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n at_o the_o best_a wave_v all_o exception_n yet_o certain_o it_o be_v no_o general_a council_n if_o it_o be_v it_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o first_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o general_a council_n itself_o three_o succeed_a pope_n be_v much_o to_o blame_v to_o father_n the_o canon_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o first_o general_n council_n of_o nice_a the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n do_v not_o bind_v the_o african_n of_o old_a much_o less_o bind_v we_o now_o second_o the_o canon_n of_o sardica_n do_v only_o give_v way_n to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n in_o case_n between_o two_o bishop_n but_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n admit_v appeal_v from_o inferior_a clergy_n man_n from_o lay_v man_n from_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n in_o all_o sort_n of_o cause_n that_o be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n three_o the_o canon_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o mere_a permission_n no_o precept_n what_o may_v be_v do_v in_o discretion_n not_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v of_o necessity_n it_o be_v propose_v with_o a_o si_fw-mi vobis_fw-la placet_fw-la if_o it_o please_v you_o and_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o be_v a_o compliment_n let_v we_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o s._n peter_n four_o there_o be_v one_o great_a circumstance_n in_o our_o case_n which_o vary_v it_o quite_o from_o that_o propose_v by_o osius_n to_o the_o sardican_a father_n that_o be_v that_o our_o king_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n do_v forbid_v appeal_v to_o rome_n if_o there_o have_v be_v such_o a_o imperial_a law_n then_o do_v we_o think_v that_o the_o father_n of_o sardica_n will_v have_v be_v so_o disloyal_a or_o so_o simple_a to_o think_v to_o abrogate_v the_o imperial_a law_n by_o their_o canon_n which_o be_v no_o law_n but_o by_o the_o emperor_n confirmation_n no_o the_o father_n of_o that_o age_n do_v know_v their_o duty_n too_o well_o to_o their_o emperor_n and_o if_o they_o can_v have_v foresee_v what_o avaricious_a practice_n and_o what_o gross_a oppression_n will_v have_v spring_v in_o time_n from_o this_o little_a seed_n of_o their_o indulgence_n they_o will_v have_v abhominate_v they_o last_o suppose_v the_o sardican_a council_n have_v be_v of_o more_o authority_n and_o the_o canon_n thereof_o of_o more_o extent_n than_o it_o be_v and_o more_o peremptory_a and_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o intervening_a impediment_n why_o english_a subject_n can_v not_o make_v use_n of_o that_o remedy_n yet_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n can_v give_v but_o humane_a right_n and_o a_o contrary_a prescription_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v a_o sufficient_a enfranchisement_n from_o all_o pretence_n of_o humane_a right_n the_o second_o branch_n of_o this_o usurpation_n excommunicaetion_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o former_a concern_v papal_a bull_n and_o excommunication_n that_o by_o our_o ancient_a law_n they_o can_v be_v execute_v in_o england_n without_o the_o king_n leave_v in_o the_o assize_n of_o clarendon_n this_o be_v find_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o england_n that_o none_o of_o the_o king_n servant_n or_o tenant_n that_o hold_v of_o he_o in_o capite_fw-la 1164._o may_v be_v excommunicate_v or_o their_o land_n interdict_v before_o the_o king_n be_v make_v acquaint_v there_o be_v a_o severe_a law_n make_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o same_o king_n 2._o if_o any_o man_n be_v find_v bring_v in_o the_o pope_n letter_n or_o mandate_n let_v he_o be_v apprehend_v and_o let_v justice_n pass_v upon_o he_o without_o delay_n as_o a_o traitor_n to_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o first_o and_o second_o henry_n be_v no_o more_o propitious_a to_o rome_n then_o henry_n the_o eight_o take_v one_o statute_n more_o it_o be_v enact_v in_o full_a parliament_n by_o richard_n the_o second_o 4._o that_o if_o any_o do_v procure_v or_o pursue_v any_o such_o processes●or_a excommunication_n in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v there_o mention_v that_o be_v concern_v presentation_n to_o benefice_n or_o dignity_n ecclesiastical_a and_o they_o who_o bring_v they_o into_o the_o realm_n or_o receive_v they_o or_o execute_v they_o shall_v be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o king_n protection_n their_o land_n good_n and_o chattel_n be_v confiscate_v to_o the_o king_n and_o their_o body_n attach_v they_o have_v the_o same_o respect_n for_o the_o pope_n bull_n as_o often_o as_o they_o do_v not_o like_o they_o 4._o in_o henry_n the_o fourth_n time_n as_o we_o see_v by_o the_o statute_n make_v against_o those_o who_o bring_v or_o prosecute_v the_o pope_n bull_n grant_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o cystercians_n 1._o by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n if_o any_o man_n denounce_v the_o pope_n excommunication_n without_o the_o assent_n of_o the_o king_n he_o forfeit_v all_o his_o good_n and_o it_o be_v record_v in_o particular_a how_o the_o king_n write_v issue_v out_o against_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o norwich_n as_o be_v at_o the_o king_n mercy_n 1164._o because_o contrary_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o
clarendon_n by_o the_o pope_n mandate_n they_o have_v interdict_v the_o land_n of_o earl_n hugh_n and_o have_v publish_v a_o excommunication_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v out_o against_o he_o all_o these_o law_n continue_v still_o in_o force_n and_o be_v never_o repeal_v in_o england_n neither_o before_o henry_n the_o eight_o begin_v the_o reformation_n nor_o since_o by_o queen_n mary_n but_o have_v ever_o continue_v in_o full_a force_n until_o this_o day_n last_o for_o legate_n and_o legantine_n court_v there_o can_v be_v no_o appeal_v in_o eugland_n to_o any_o legate_n or_o nuncio_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n legate_n but_o all_o appeal_v must_v be_v from_o the_o archdeacon_n to_o the_o bishop_n from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o archbishop_n from_o the_o archbishop_n to_o the_o king_n as_o we_o see_v express_o by_o the_o statute_n of_o assize_n of_o clarendon_n former_o cite_v the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o deem_v it_o to_o be_v a_o unquestionable_a right_n of_o the_o crown_n as_o eadmerus_n testify_v to_o suffer_v none_o to_o excercise_n the_o office_n of_o a_o legate_n in_o england_n 125._o if_o the_o king_n himself_o do_v not_o desire_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n upon_o some_o great_a quarrel_n that_o can_v not_o be_v so_o well_o determine_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n which_o privilege_n be_v consent_v unto_o by_o pope_n calixius_n ibid._n by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n if_o a_o legate_n be_v admit_v of_o courtesy_n 7._o he_o be_v to_o take_v his_o oath_n to_o do_v nothing_o derogatory_n to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o crown_n henry_n the_o six_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o humphrey_n duke_n of_o gloster_n the_o protector_n protest_v against_o pope_n martin_n and_o his_o legate_n that_o they_o will_v not_o admit_v he_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o libertye_n of_o the_o realm_n monument_n and_o dissent_v from_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v and_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v recall_v cardinal_n pool_n commission_n of_o legate_n for_o england_n and_o be_v send_v another_o legate_n into_o england_n queen_n marry_o be_v very_o tender_a of_o her_o kinsman_n honour_n for_o all_o her_o good_a affection_n to_o rome_n be_v yet_o mindful_a of_o this_o point_n of_o old_a english_a law_n to_o cause_v all_o the_o seaport_n to_o be_v stop_v and_o all_o letter_n brief_n and_o bull_n from_o rome_n to_o be_v intercept_v and_o bring_v to_o she_o she_o know_v this_o be_v a_o old_a english_a not_o a_o new_a protestant_n privilege_n neither_o will_v she_o ever_o admit_v the_o new_a legate_n to_o appear_v as_o legate_n in_o her_o presence_n now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o these_o old_a english_a custom_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o french_a liberty_n the_o pope_n can_v send_v a_o legate_n a_o latere_fw-la into_o france_n with_o power_n to_o reform_v judge_n collate_n dispense_v except_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o desire_n or_o with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n neither_o can_v the_o legate_n execute_v his_o charge_n until_o he_o have_v promise_v the_o king_n under_o his_o oath_n upon_o his_o holy_a order_n to_o make_v no_o long_o use_v of_o the_o legantine_n power_n in_o the_o king_n dominion_n than_o it_o please_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v attempt_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallicane_n church_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o a_o future_a council_n another_o liberty_n be_v the_o commission_n and_o bull_n of_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v view_v by_o the_o court_n of_o parliament_n and_o register_v and_o publish_v with_o such_o caution_n as_o that_o court_n shall_v judge_v expedient_a a_o three_o liberty_n be_v papal_a bull_n sentence_n excommunication_n and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o to_o be_v execute_v in_o france_n without_o the_o king_n command_n or_o permission_n last_o neither_o the_o king_n nor_o his_o realm_n nor_o his_o officer_n can_v be_v excommunicate_v nor_o interdict_a by_o the_o pope_n and_o as_o england_n and_o france_n so_o all_o the_o seventeen_o province_n do_v enjoy_v the_o same_o privilege_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o placaet_fw-la of_o the_o council_n of_o brabant_n date_v at_o bruxelles_n may_v 12_o an._n 1653._o wherein_o they_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v notorious_o true_a that_o the_o subject_n of_o those_o province_n of_o what_o state_n or_o condition_n soever_o that_o be_v the_o clergy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o laity_n can_v be_v cite_v or_o convent_v out_o of_o the_o land_n no_o not_o before_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n itself_o and_o that_o the_o censure_n excommunication_n &c_n &c_n of_o that_o court_n may_v not_o be_v publish_v or_o put_v in_o execution_n without_o the_o king_n approbation_n it_o seem_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o judiciary_n power_n of_o old_a he_o must_v seek_v it_o near_a home_n people_n have_v no_o mind_n to_o go_v over_o the_o alps_n to_o seek_v for_o justice_n and_o that_o ordinance_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n have_v place_v every_o where_o among_o our_o ancestor_n 55._o see_v it_o be_v decree_v by_o all_o and_o it_o be_v equal_a and_o just_a that_o every_o man_n cause_n be_v hear_v there_o where_o the_o crime_n be_v commit_v and_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v assign_v to_o every_o pastor_n which_o he_o may_v rule_v and_o govern_v and_o must_v render_v a_o account_n of_o his_o action_n to_o the_o lord_n it_o behove_v those_o who_o we_o be_v over_o not_o to_o run_v up_o and_o down_o nor_o to_o knock_v bishop_n who_o agree_v well_o one●_n against_o another_o by_o their_o cunning_a and_o deceitful_a rashness_n but_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n there_o where_o they_o may_v have_v both_o accuser_n and_o witness_n of_o their_o crime_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n who_o have_v judge_v they_o already_o seem_v less_o to_o a_o few_o desperate_a and_o lose_a person_n etc._n etc._n to_o say_v s._n cyprian_n mean_v not_o to_o condemn_v appeal_n but_o only_o the_o bring_v cause_n out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n be_v a_o shift_n as_o desperate_a as_o that_o of_o those_o fugitive_n for_o st._n cyprian_n tell_v we_o plain_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v already_o judge_v and_o sentence_n give_v in_o africa_n the_o first_o instance_n be_v past_a and_o this_o canon_n be_v make_v against_o appeal_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n sect_n i._o cap_n viii_o so_o from_o his_o judiciary_n power_n i_o come_v to_o papal_a dispensation_n dispensation_n the_o last_o of_o the_o grosser_n usurpation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n where_o i_o have_v a_o large_a field_n offer_v i_o to_o expatiate_v in_o if_o i_o hold_v it_o so_o pertinent_a to_o the_o present_a controversy_n the_o pharisee_n do_v never_o dilate_v their_o philactery_n so_o much_o as_o the_o roman_a courtier_n do_v their_o dispensative_a power_n the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o oath_n with_o vow_n with_o law_n he_o lose_v from_o sin_n from_o censure_n from_o punishment_n be_v not_o this_o a_o strange_a key_n which_o can_v unlock_v both_o sin_n and_o censure_n and_o punishment_n and_o law_n and_o oath_n and_o vow_n where_o there_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o different_a ward_n it_o be_v two_o to_o one_o that_o it_o prove_v not_o a_o right_a key_n but_o a_o picklock_n their_o doctrine_n of_o dispensation_n be_v foul_a enough_o especial_o in_o such_o case_n as_o concern_v the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n as_o oath_n vow_n league_n marriage_n allegiance_n for_o either_o they_o make_v the_o dispensation_n to_o be_v only_o declarative_a and_o then_o the_o purchaser_n be_v mere_o cheat_v who_o pay_v his_o money_n for_o nothing_o or_o else_o they_o make_v all_o contract_n league_n promise_n to_o be_v but_o conditional_a if_o the_o pope_n approve_v they_o which_o destroy_v all_o mutual_a trust_n and_o humane_a society_n or_o three_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n dispensation_n to_o be_v a_o take_n away_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o vow_n or_o oath_n that_o be_v the_o promise_n as_o if_o the_o papal_a power_n can_v recall_v that_o which_o be_v past_a or_o make_v that_o to_o be_v undo_v to_o day_n which_o be_v do_v yesterday_o or_o that_o not_o to_o be_v promise_v which_o be_v promise_v or_o last_o they_o do_v dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n as_o they_o do_v indeed_o what_o soever_o they_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a or_o all_o this_o kind_n of_o dispensation_n signify_v nothing_o but_o the_o practice_n of_o dispensation_n be_v much_o more_o foul_a witness_v their_o penitentiary_n tax_n wherein_o a_o man_n may_v see_v the_o price_n of_o his_o sin_n before_o hand_n their_o common_a nundination_n of_o pardon_n their_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n their_o lose_n of_o prince_n from_o their_o solemn_a league_n of_o marry_a people_n from_o the_o bond_n of_o
as_o he_o call_v they_o do_v not_o baffle_v he_o and_o trip_v up_o his_o heel_n i_o plead_v that_o roman_a catholic_n do_v make_v the_o first_o separation_n he_o answer_v that_o this_o plea_n do_v equal_o acquit_v any_o villain_n in_o the_o world_n who_o insist_o in_o the_o step_n of_o his_o forefather_n villain_n will_v no_o expression_n low_o than_o this_o of_o villain_n serve_v his_o tur●e_n who_o can_v help_v it_o if_o those_o forefather_n who_o he_o intimate_v be_v villain_n or_o any_o thing_n like_o villain_n they_o be_v his_o forefather_n twenty_o time_n more_o than_o we_o we_o inherit_v but_o one_o point_n in_o difference_n from_o they_o but_o he_o twenty_o the_o denomination_n ought_v to_o be_v from_o the_o great_a part_n if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v deem_v more_o propitious_a to_o we_o then_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v henry_n the_o eight_o or_o archbishop_n cranmer_z for_o both_o these_o we_o have_v their_o own_o confession_n that_o they_o be_v they_o first_o for_o henry_n the_o eight_o 59_o we_o have_v a_o king_n who_o by_o his_o law_n abolish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n although_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n he_o will_v follow_v the_o faith_n of_o his_o ancestor_n and_o for_o archbishop_n cranmer_n hear_v another_o of_o they_o cranmer_z the_o unworthy_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v his_o the_o earl_n of_o hartford_n right_a hand_n and_o chief_a assistant_n in_o the_o work_n although_o but_o a_o few_o month_n before_o he_o be_v of_o king_n harry_n religion_n yea_o a_o great_a patron_n and_o prosecutor_n of_o the_o six_o article_n but_o to_o deal_v clear_o with_o you_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n to_o imitate_v a_o notorious_a knave_n in_o his_o confess_a knavery_n and_o to_o follow_v one_o who_o have_v not_o only_o a_o reasonable_a and_o just_a cause_n of_o contend_v but_o also_o the_o reputation_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n even_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o adverse_a party_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n except_o only_o therein_o wherein_o he_o be_v adverse_a to_o they_o such_o be_v all_o the_o actor_n in_o this_o cause_n by_o their_o confession_n if_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o who_o cast_v out_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v schismatic_n for_o so_o do_v he_o say_v something_o but_o we_o justify_v their_o act_n as_o pious_a and_o virtuous_a and_o so_o his_o comparison_n have_v never_o a_o leg_n to_o run_v on_o i_o plead_v that_o it_o be_v a_o violent_a presumption_n of_o their_o gild_n and_o our_o innocence_n when_o their_o best_a friend_n and_o best_a able_a to_o judge_n who_o preach_v for_o they_o and_o write_v for_o they_o who_o act_v for_o they_o and_o suffer_v for_o they_o who_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v great_a zelots_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o persecute_v the_o poor_a protestant_n with_o fire_n and_o faggot_n yet_o condemn_v they_o and_o justify_v this_o seperarion_n he_o mince_v what_o i_o say_v according_a to_o his_o use_n and_o then_o except_v the_o word_n best_o might_n have_v be_v leave_v out_o they_o ever_o be_v account_v better_a friend_n who_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a faith_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n look_v upon_o as_o schismatic_n by_o the_o obedient_a party_n 2._o yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n doubt_v not_o to_o call_v they_o the_o best_a of_o bishop_n he_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o tell_v we_o for_o his_o credit_n sake_n who_o those_o other_o bishop_n be_v who_o look_v upon_o these_o as_o schismatic_n such_o be_v his_o ignorance_n in_o the_o state_n of_o these_o time_n that_o he_o dream_v of_o two_o party_n a_o obedient_a party_n and_o a_o rebellious_a party_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o party_n but_o all_o go_v one_o way_n there_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n nor_o a_o abbot_n of_o note_n in_o the_o kingdom_n who_o do_v not_o vote_n the_o king_n supremacy_n four_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n and_o five_o and_o twenty_o abbot_n personal_o at_o one_o time_n there_o be_v not_o a_o bishop_n nor_o any_o person_n of_o note_n in_o the_o kingdom_n who_o do_v not_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n except_o bishop_n fisher_n and_o s._n thomas_n moor_n who_o be_v imprison_v for_o treason_n either_o true_a or_o pretend_a before_o that_o act_n be_v make_v for_o oppose_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o crown_n if_o he_o will_v not_o trust_v i_o let_v he_o trust_v the_o veredict_v of_o our_o university_n a_o length_n we_o all_o agree_v unanimous_o in_o this_o sentence_n and_o be_v of_o one_o accord_n obedientia_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v no_o great_a jurisdiction_n give_v he_o by_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n than_o any_o other_o foreign_a bishop_n the_o same_o sentence_n be_v give_v by_o our_o convocation_n or_o synod_n the_o same_o sentence_n be_v give_v by_o our_o parliament_n with_o the_o same_o concord_n and_o unanimity_n nemine_fw-la dissentiente_fw-la we_o have_v no_o party_n but_o one_o and_o all_o let_v he_o listen_v to_o his_o friend_n bishop_n gardiner_n no_o foreign_a bishop_n have_v any_o authority_n among_o we_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n be_v agree_v with_o we_o upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o steadfast_a consent_n that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n and_o ireland_n be_v unanimous_a herein_o with_o england_n all_o the_o great_a family_n as_o well_o of_o the_o irish_a as_o of_o the_o english_a do_v acknowledge_v by_o their_o indenture_n to_o s._n anthony_n st._n leger_n then_o chief_a governor_n of_o ireland_n the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o utter_o renounce_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n 8._o yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o meaning_n of_o our_o ancestor_n then_o and_o though_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v so_o mind_v it_o be_v not_o our_o meaning_n now_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o abridge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o any_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a or_o any_o legacy_n which_o be_v leave_v he_o by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n but_o only_o to_o cast_v out_o his_o usurp_a coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v never_o exercise_v or_o dispose_v of_o or_o meddle_v with_o and_o to_o vindicate_v to_o our_o king_n the_o political_a or_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o themselves_o and_o by_o their_o bishop_n and_o other_o fit_a delegate_n as_o a_o right_n due_a to_o all_o christian_a prince_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n but_o he_o attribute_v all_o this_o to_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o people_n and_o the_o king_n violent_a cruelty_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o what_o he_o say_v cit_v half_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o doctor_n hammond_n but_o he_o do_v dr._n hammond_n notorious_a wrong_n dr._n hammond_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o first_o preparatory_a act_n which_o occasion_v they_o to_o take_v the_o matter_n of_o right_n into_o a_o serious_a debate_n in_o a_o synodical_a way_n he_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o subsequent_a act_n of_o renunciation_n after_o debate_n dr._n hammond_n say_v only_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v believe_v mr._n sergeant_n make_v it_o a_o just_a presumption_n or_o confess_v evidence_n dr._n hammond_n speak_v of_o no_o fear_n but_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o law_n the_o law_n of_o praemunire_n a_o ancient_a law_n make_v many_o age_n before_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v bear_v the_o palladium_n of_o england_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o misappli_v it_o whole_o to_o the_o fear_n of_o he_o king_n violent_a cruelty_n last_o he_o smother_v dr._n hammonds_n sense_n express_v clear_o by_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o do_v believe_v what_o they_o do_v profess_v the_o fear_n be_v the_o occasion_n of_o their_o debate_n but_o the_o reason_n or_o argument_n offer_v in_o debate_n the_o cause_n as_o in_o all_o charity_n we_o be_v to_o judge_n of_o their_o decision_n he_o use_v not_o to_o cite_v any_o thing_n ingenuous_o if_o he_o do_v he_o can_v have_v tell_v his_o reader_n that_o this_o answer_n be_v take_v away_o by_o i_o before_o it_o be_v make_v by_o he_o for_o two_o whole_a kingdom_n the_o university_n the_o convocation_n the_o parliament_n to_o betray_v their_o conscience_n to_o renounce_v a_o article_n which_o they_o esteem_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n only_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o praemunire_n or_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o good_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o to_o deny_v the_o essence_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o turn_v schismatic_n as_o if_o they_o do_v all_o value_n their_o good_n more_o than_o their_o soul_n without_o so_o much_o as_o one_o to_o oppose_v it_o be_v a_o vain_a uncharitable_a
surrejoinder_n together_o in_o this_o one_o short_a section_n and_o give_v sentence_n ready_o who_o be_v the_o mountebank_n and_o prevaricatour_n and_o first_o i_o challenge_v this_o great_a champion_n of_o downright_a cowardice_n as_o great_a as_o ever_o his_o predecessor_n thraso_n show_v in_o the_o comedy_n in_o smother_a and_o conceal_v palpable_o and_o shameful_o his_o adversary_n reason_n and_o decline_v the_o heat_n of_o the_o assault_n the_o main_a subject_n of_o this_o section_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o ancient_a king_n of_o england_n do_v assume_v as_o much_o power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v that_o the_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v no_o new_a law_n but_o only_a renovation_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n which_o have_v never_o be_v repeal_v or_o abrogate_a in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o predecessor_n but_o be_v of_o force_n in_o england_n at_o that_o very_a time_n when_o he_o make_v his_o law_n as_o the_o statute_n of_o clarendon_n the_o statute_n of_o carlisle_n the_o article_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n and_o other_o old_a law_n make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o henry_n the_o three_o edward_z the_o first_o and_o edward_z the_o three_o richard_n the_o second_o henry_n the_o four_o all_o of_o they_o dead_a and_o go_v many_o age_n before_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v bear_v i_o show_v particular_o that_o they_o suffer_v not_o the_o pope_n to_o send_v for_o any_o english_a subject_n out_o of_o england_n to_o rome_n without_o leave_n nor_o to_o send_v any_o legate_n into_o england_n without_o leave_n nor_o to_o receive_v any_o appeal_v out_o of_o england_n without_o leave_n they_o make_v it_o death_n or_o at_o least_o the_o forfeiture_n of_o all_o a_o man_n estate_n to_o bring_v any_o papal_a bull_n or_o excommunication_n into_o england_n they_o call_v ecclesiastical_a counsel_n make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n punish_v ecclesiastical_a person_n prohibit_v ecclesiastical_a judge_n receive_v ecclesiastical_a appeal_v make_v ecclesiastical_a corporation_n appropriate_v ecclesiastical_a benefice_n reject_v the_o pope_n law_n at_o their_o pleasure_n with_o a_o nolumus_fw-la we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o law_n of_o england_n to_o be_v change_v or_o give_v legislative_a interpretation_n of_o they_o as_o they_o think_v fit_a all_o this_o i_o have_v make_v evident_a out_o of_o our_o ancient_a law_n our_o record_n our_o historiographer_n in_o my_o vindication_n in_o my_o reply_n and_o in_o this_o treatise_n and_o therefore_o i_o may_v well_o retort_v upon_o he_o his_o own_o confident_a brag_n that_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n or_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v be_v and_o not_o be_v at_o once_o that_o our_o ancestor_n who_o do_v all_o this_o and_o much_o more_o than_o this_o do_v acknowledge_v no_o monarchical_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n as_o mr._n serjeant_n assert_v and_o that_o they_o do_v exercise_n as_o much_o power_n in_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n as_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v and_o that_o henry_n the_o eighths_n law_n be_v no_o new_a law_n devise_v by_o himself_o but_o be_v the_o law_n of_o these_o ancient_a king_n renew_v by_o he_o or_o rather_o the_o fundamental_a law_n and_o liberty_n of_o england_n expose_v by_o these_o ancient_a king_n as_o a_o buckler_n against_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n now_o to_o all_o this_o clear_a evidence_n what_o answer_n do_v mr._n serjeant_n make_v just_o thraso-like_a when_o the_o matter_n come_v to_o push_v of_o pike_n he_o sneak_v away_o post_fw-la principia_fw-la into_o the_o secure_a place_n he_o can_v find_v speak_v the_o truth_n in_o earnest_n do_v pyrrhus_n use_v to_o do_v thus_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o squeeze_v one_o word_n of_o particular_a answer_n out_o of_o he_o only_o in_o general_n he_o say_v i_o bring_v divers_a allegation_n 311._o wherein_o the_o pope_n pretence_n be_v not_o admit_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o proceed_v do_v we_o profess_v the_o pope_n can_v pretend_v to_o no_o more_o than_o his_o right_n &_o c._n law_n and_o record_n be_v but_o bare_a allegation_n with_o he_o and_o prohibit_v under_o pain_n of_o death_n or_o confiscation_n of_o good_n be_v no_o more_o but_o not_o admit_v speak_v out_o man_n and_o shame_v the_o devil_n whether_o do_v the_o pope_n pretend_v more_o than_o be_v right_a or_o not_o whether_o be_v the_o ancient_a english_a law_n just_a law_n or_o not_o this_o be_v certain_a his_o pretension_n and_o these_o law_n can_v both_o be_v just_a the_o very_a substance_n of_o his_o monarchical_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n be_v prohibit_v by_o these_o law_n his_o sovereign_a power_n or_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n his_o judiciary_n power_n his_o legislative_a power_n his_o dispensative_a power_n all_o be_v lose_v if_o these_o law_n stand_v all_o which_o mr._n sergeant_n blanch_v over_o with_o this_o general_a expression_n such_o and_o such_o thing_n will_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n thank_v such_o and_o such_o a_o advocate_n who_o forsake_v they_o at_o a_o dead_a lift_n i_o trow_v no._n and_o although_o i_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o my_o reply_n for_o a_o full_a and_o more_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o these_o law_n yet_o he_o give_v none_o in_o his_o rejoinder_n but_o shuffle_v up_o the_o matter_n in_o general_n as_o for_o his_o particularity_n entrench_v on_o or_o pretend_v to_o entrench_v on_o the_o pope_n authority_n whether_o they_o be_v lawful_o do_v or_o no_o how_o far_o they_o extend_v in_o what_o circumstance_n or_o case_n they_o hold_v in_o what_o not_o how_o the_o letter_n of_o those_o law_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v etc._n etc._n all_o which_o the_o bishop_n omitt_v though_o he_o express_v the_o bare_a word_n it_o belong_v to_o canon_n and_o secular_a lawyer_n to_o scuffle_v about_o they_o not_o i_o i_o hold_v myself_o to_o the_o list_n of_o the_o question_n and_o the_o limit_n of_o a_o controvertist_n yes_o even_o as_o thrasoheld_v himself_o to_o the_o list_n when_o he_o steal_v behind_o the_o second_o ward_n this_o be_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o but_o flat_o run_v away_o and_o cry_v to_o the_o canonist_n for_o help_n if_o the_o subject_n be_v improper_a for_o he_o why_o do_v he_o undertake_v it_o and_o not_o try_v first_o quid_fw-la far_o recusent_fw-la quid_fw-la valeant_fw-la humeri_fw-la why_o do_v he_o undertake_v it_o with_o so_o much_o youthful_a confidence_n and_o insult_a scorn_n and_o petulance_n to_o accuse_v his_o adversary_n of_o impudence_n and_o as_o if_o impudence_n be_v too_o moderate_a a_o character_n for_o he_o as_o a_o profess_a and_o swear_v enemy_n of_o truth_n shame_n and_o honesty_n make_v he_o worse_o than_o a_o mad_a man_n or_o bear_v fool_n and_o all_o this_o for_o pretend_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v no_o more_o against_o the_o papacy_n than_o his_o ancestor_n king_n have_v do_v before_o he_o and_o now_o when_o his_o cavil_n be_v thrust_v down_o his_o own_o throat_n when_o the_o impudence_n be_v bring_v home_o to_o he_o and_o lay_v at_o his_o own_o door_n when_o the_o very_a law_n of_o his_o ancestor_n be_v produce_v wherein_o they_o provide_v the_o same_o remedy_n for_o the_o roman_a court_n that_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v he_o will_v with_o draw_v his_o own_o neck_n o●t_v of_o the_o collar_n and_o leave_v the_o defence_n of_o his_o cause_n to_o the_o canon_n and_o secular_a lawyer_n to_o scuffle_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o ancient_a law_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v law_n full_o do_v or_o no_o and_o how_o far_o they_o extend_v and_o in_o what_o case_n they_o hold_v in_o what_o not_o and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o answer_n which_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o these_o ancient_a english_a law_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o answer_v or_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o answer_v and_o this_o he_o call_v hold_v himself_o to_o the_o list_n of_o the_o question_n but_o all_o other_o man_n call_v it_o leap_v out_o of_o the_o list_n of_o the_o question_n and_o a_o shameful_a desert_v the_o cause_n he_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v i_o ever_o acknowledge_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o make_v sundry_a new_a statute_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o i_o add_v that_o these_o statute_n be_v declarative_a of_o old_a law_n not_o enactive_a of_o new_a law_n this_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o his_o noon_n daylight_n and_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o two_o of_o our_o great_a lawyer_n fitz_n herbert_n and_o my_o lord_n cook_n person_n sufficient_a to_o know_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o statute_n declarative_n of_o old_a law_n and_o a_o statute_n enactive_a of_o new_a
the_o law_n and_o history_n of_o his_o native_a country_n if_o he_o have_v peruse_v they_o diligent_o he_o may_v have_v observe_v how_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o crown_n of_o england_n be_v long_o upon_o their_o guard_n watch_v one_o another_o and_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o gain_v or_o lose_v mutual_o according_a to_o the_o vigour_n of_o their_o present_a king_n or_o pope_n or_o according_a to_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o time_n his_o seven_o objection_n that_o the_o like_a law_n to_o we_o in_o england_n be_v make_v in_o the_o papacy_n itself_o but_o those_o can_v not_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n headship_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o ten_o objection_n that_o then_o there_o never_o be_v a_o papist_n country_n in_o the_o world_n because_o equivalent_a law_n to_o we_o be_v make_v in_o france_n spain_n italy_n sicily_n gormany_n poland_n &c_n &c_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o demand_n what_o law_n full_a jurisdiction_n can_v remain_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o england_n where_o such_o and_o such_o law_n have_v force_v the_o same_o that_o remain_v still_o to_o he_o in_o france_n spain_n italy_n where_o the_o like_a law_n be_v in_o force_n in_o his_o last_o paragraph_n be_v a_o dish_n of_o unsavoury_a mushroom_n all_o spring_v up_o from_o his_o own_o negligent_a mistake_n or_o wilful_a falsification_n let_v he_o choose_v whether_o he_o will_v in_o confound_v the_o law_n of_o mortmain_n with_o the_o other_o law_n against_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n 71._o which_o i_o distinguish_v exact_o both_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o discourse_n the_o statute_n of_o mortmain_n justify_v and_o at_o the_o conclusion_n but_o to_o leave_v this_o digression_n 74._o but_o besides_o this_o gross_a error_n there_o want_v not_o other_o inconsequence_n and_o fallacy_n in_o his_o discourse_n as_o in_o his_o seven_o objection_n from_o the_o pope_n particular_a headship_n of_o his_o own_o church_n to_o a_o universal_a headship_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o from_o a_o headship_n of_o order_n to_o a_o monarchical_a headship_n of_o power_n and_o in_o his_o ten_o objection_n from_o like_a law_n to_o the_o same_o law_n from_o law_n make_v to_o law_n due_o observe_v we_o have_v law_n make_v against_o nonconformist_n in_o england_n will_v he_o conclude_v thence_o that_o we_o have_v no_o nonconformist_n in_o england_n the_o argument_n will_v hold_v better_o the_o contrary_a way_n exit_fw-la malis_fw-la moribus_fw-la bonae_fw-la leges_fw-la and_o in_o his_o last_o paragraph_n from_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n to_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o from_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o prince_n to_o the_o same_o without_o leave_n we_o see_v all_o roman_n catholic_n country_n do_v stint_v the_o pope_n coactive_a jurisdiction_n over_o their_o subject_n more_o or_o less_o according_a to_o their_o several_a liberty_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v at_o all_o if_o he_o hold_v it_o by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n his_o eight_o objection_n that_o upon_o this_o new_a law_n make_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o england_n stand_v at_o another_o distance_n then_o former_o from_o rome_n be_v a_o fallacy_n non_fw-la causae_fw-la pro_fw-la causa_fw-la when_o a_o false_a cause_n be_v assign_v for_o a_o true_a cause_n our_o just_a law_n be_v not_o the_o right_a cause_n of_o our_o distance_n from_o rome_n but_o the_o pope_n unjust_a censure_n and_o that_o character_n which_o some_o of_o our_o countryman_n give_v of_o we_o but_o this_o distance_n be_v great_a among_o the_o populacy_n then_o between_o the_o estate_n who_o do_v not_o much_o regard_n the_o pope_n censure_n either_o in_o make_v or_o observe_v of_o league_n to_o his_o nine_o objection_n in_o his_o order_n and_o his_o last_o in_o my_o order_n that_o this_o position_n take_v away_o the_o question_n and_o make_v all_o the_o controvertist_n in_o england_n on_o both_o side_n talk_v in_o the_o air_n because_o it_o make_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v have_v no_o authority_n there_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o i_o answer_v i_o wish_v it_o do_v but_o it_o do_v not_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n there_o and_o authority_n usurp_v fit_a to_o be_v cast_v out_o notwithstanding_o our_o former_a good_a law_n but_o yet_o i_o must_v confess_v this_o position_n do_v much_o change_n the_o question_n from_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o inner_a court_n to_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n and_o make_v he_o and_o many_o other_o such_o controvertist_n talk_v in_o the_o air_n who_o dispute_v only_o about_o headship_n and_o first_o movership_n when_o the_o true_a controversy_n lie_v in_o point_n of_o interest_n and_o profit_n sect._n 4._o that_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v ever_o exempt_v from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n and_o so_o ought_v to_o continue_v after_o i_o have_v show_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o apostle_n except_o only_o a_o priority_n of_o order_n and_o that_o the_o supremacy_n of_o power_n do_v not_o rest_n in_o any_o single_a apostolical_a college_n that_o national_n patriarch_n be_v the_o high_a order_n constitute_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o some_o patriarch_n come_v to_o be_v advance_v above_o other_o with_o the_o true_a dignity_n or_o pre-eminence_n of_o apostolical_a church_n the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o section_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o syllogism_n those_o church_n which_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n can_v be_v subject_v to_o any_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o future_a against_o their_o own_o will_n but_o all_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v ever_o exempt_v from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n the_o major_a proposition_n be_v prove_v by_o i_o undeviable_o out_o of_o the_o first_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o which_o mr._n sergeant_n have_v object_v nothing_o next_o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a first_o by_o prescription_n affirmanti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la the_o burden_n of_o the_o proof_n in_o law_n rest_v upon_o the_o affirmer_n but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o show_v so_o much_o as_o one_o single_a act_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o ever_o any_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v in_o brittaign_a for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n second_o i_o prove_v it_o from_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n which_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o roman_n itself_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a from_o the_o beginning_n three_o because_o the_o britannic_a church_n side_v with_o the_o eastern_a church_n against_o the_o roman_a and_o therefore_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a fo●rthly_o because_o they_o have_v their_o ordination_n ordinary_o at_o home_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a sign_n of_o a_o free_a church_n subject_n to_o no_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n last_o because_o they_o renounce_v all_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o be_o force_v to_o repeat_v thus_o much_o to_o let_v the_o reader_n see_v the_o contexture_n of_o my_o discourse_n which_o mr._n sergeant_n do_v whatsoever_o he_o can_v to_o conceal_v or_o at_o least_o to_o confound_v and_o disjoint_v out_o of_o this_o he_o pick_v here_o and_o there_o what_o he_o please_v first_o he_o plead_v that_o my_o title_n be_v the_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n can_v derive_v no_o title_n from_o the_o britannic_a or_o scottish_a church_n he_o never_o read_v or_o quite_o forget_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n i_o will_v help_v his_o memory_n let_v he_o read_v the_o vindication_n by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n we_o understand_v not_o the_o english_a nation_n alone_o 24._o but_o the_o english_a dominion_n include_v the_o british_a and_o scotish_n or_o irish_a christian_n so_o at_o unaware_o he_o have_v yield_v the_o bishopric_n of_o chester_n hereford_n worcester_z for_o all_o these_o be_v suffragans_fw-la to_o carleon_n wales_n cornwall_n ireland_n scotland_n with_o all_o the_o adjacent_a land_n that_o be_v to_o say_v two_o three_o part_n of_o the_o english_a dominion_n second_o he_o plead_v that_o for_o this_o many_o hundred_o year_n they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o will_v do_v he_o no_o good_a nor_o satisfy_v the_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n at_o all_o which_o have_v decree_v express_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o cyprian_a prelate_n and_o they_o command_v the_o same_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o all_o province_n that_o no_o bishop_n occupy_v another_o province_n which_o former_o and_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o under_o the_o power_n of_o he_o or_o his_o predecessor_n and_o if_o any_o do_v occupy_v another_o province_n that_o in_o this_o case_n let_v he_o restore_v it_o
with_o s●_n peter_n nor_o with_o any_o other_o about_o the_o privilege_n of_o st._n peter_n let_v he_o be_v first_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o the_o apostel_n in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o the_o ancient_a father_n style_v he_o so_o let_v he_o be_v the_o first_o ministerial_a mover_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o the_o church_n have_v recourse_n to_o a_o prime_a apostle_n or_o apostolical_a church_n in_o doubtful_a case_n the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o winchester_n of_o who_o it_o be_v no_o shame_n for_o he_o to_o learn_v may_v have_v teach_v he_o thus_o much_o not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n 1._o neither_o be_v it_o question_v among_o we_o whither_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o primacy_n but_o what_o that_o primacy_n be_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v now_o challenge_v to_o himself_o and_o you_o challenge_v to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o king_n do●h_v not_o deny_v peter_n to_o have_v be_v the_o prime_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o wonder_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o who_o common_o run_v over_o in_o his_o expression_n shall_v now_o on_o a_o sudden_a become_v so_o dry_a upon_o this_o subject_a if_o this_o be_v all_o be_v need_v not_o to_o have_v forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o any_o great_a devotion_n that_o he_o bear_v to_o st._n peter_n more_o than_o we_o but_o yet_o we_o dare_v not_o rob_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o clothe_v st._n peter_n we_o say_v clear_o with_o st._n cyprian_n hoc_fw-la erant_fw-la utique_fw-la &_o caeteri_fw-la apostoli_fw-la quod_fw-la fuit_fw-la petru_v pari_fw-la consortio_fw-la praediti_fw-la &_o honoris_fw-la &_o po●estatis_fw-la sed_fw-la exordium_n ab_fw-la unitate_fw-la proficisci●ur_fw-la eccles_n primatus_fw-la petro_n da●ur_fw-la ut_fw-la una_fw-la christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o una_fw-la ca●hedr_fw-la a_o monstretur_fw-la the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v even_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o peter_n be_v endow_v with_o a_o equal_a fellowship_n both_o of_o honour_n and_o power_n but_o the_o beginning_n come_v from_o unity_n the_o primacy_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n to_o signify_v one_o church_n and_o one_o chair_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o st._n cyprian_n make_v all_o the_o bishop_n rick_v in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v but_o one_o mass_n episcopatus_fw-la unus_fw-la est_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la multorum_fw-la concordi_fw-la numerositate_fw-la diffusus_fw-la unitate_fw-la whereof_o every_o bishop_n have_v a_o entire_a part_n cujus_fw-la a_o singulis_fw-la in_o solidum_fw-la pars_fw-la tenetur_fw-la all_o that_o he_o attribute_v to_o st._n peter_n be_v this_o begin_n of_o unity_n this_o primacy_n of_o order_n this_o pre-eminence_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o bishop_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdot_n all_o unity_n do_v spring_v cornel_n yet_o i_o esteem_v st._n cyprian_n as_o favourable_a a_o expositor_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o any_o they_o will_v find_v out_o of_o their_o own_o chair_n that_o be_v no_o more_o interest_v in_o that_o see_n this_o primacy_n neither_o the_o ancient_n nor_o we_o do_v deny_v to_o st._n peter_n of_o order_n of_o place_n of_o pre-eminence_n if_o this_o first_o movership_n will_v serve_v his_o turn_n this_o controversy_n be_v at_o a_o end_n for_o our_o part_n but_o this_o primacy_n be_v over_o lean_a the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o gusto_n to_o it_o they_o thirst_v after_o a_o visible_a monarchy_n upon_o earth_n a_o absolute_a ecclesiastical_a sovereignty_n a_o power_n to_o make_v canon_n to_o abolish_v canon_n to_o dispense_v with_o canon_n to_o impose_v pension_n to_o dispose_v dignity_n to_o decide_v controversy_n by_o a_o single_a authority_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v the_o breach_n not_o the_o innocent_a primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v by_o evident_a proof_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o noon_n day_n light_n observe_v reader_n that_o mr._n serjeant_n be_v make_v another_o vagare_fw-la our_o of_o the_o list_n to_o seek_v for_o his_o adversary_n where_o he_o be_v sure_a not_o to_o find_v he_o here_o after_o if_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o employ_v his_o pen_n upon_o this_o subject_n and_o not_o to_o bark_v at_o the_o moonshine_n in_o the_o water_n let_v he_o endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v these_o four_o thing_n which_o we_o deny_v indeed_o first_o that_o each_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o same_o power_n over_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n commission_n as_o my_o father_n sen●_n i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o which_o st._n peter_n have_v 21._o second_o that_o st._n peter_n ever_o exercise_v a_o single_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o person_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n more_o than_o they_o over_o he_o beside_o and_o over_o and_o above_o his_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n three_o that_o st._n peter_n a_o lone_a have_v his_o commission_n grant_v to_o he_o by_o christ_n as_o to_o a_o ordinary_a pastor_n to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v their_o commission_n only_o as_o delegate_n for_o term_n of_o life_n this_o new_a hatch_a distinction_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o present_a papacy_n i_o will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v one_o good_a author_n for_o it_o who_o write_v within_o a_o tho●sand_o year_n after_o christ._n last_o that_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n rest_v in_o st._n peter_n alone_o and_o be_v exercise_v by_o he_o alone_o and_o not_o by_o the_o apostolical_a college_n during_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o let_v we_o proceed_v from_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o rule_n of_o government_n peter_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n inherit_v from_o he_o this_o privilige_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o actual_o exercise_v this_o power_n in_o all_o the_o country_n which_o keep_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o privilege_n to_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n the_o chief_a bishop_n the_o principal_a bishop_n the_o first_o mover_n in_o the_o church_n just_a as_o s._n peter_n be_v among_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v hear_v of_o no_o other_o privilege_n as_o yet_o if_o a_o man_n will_v be_v please_v ou_fw-fr of_o mere_a pity_n to_o his_o starve_a cause_n to_o suppose_v thus_o much_o what_o good_a will_v it_o do_v he_o do_v he_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v ever_o accept_v of_o such_o a_o papacy_n as_o this_o or_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o double_a diligence_n he_o must_v either_o be_v mean_o verse_v in_o the_o primitive_a father_n or_o give_v little_a credit_n to_o they_o who_o will_v deny_v the_o pope_n to_o succ_v st_n peter_n in_o the_o roman_a bishopric_n or_o will_v envy_v he_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o patriarch_n with_o in_o his_o just_a bound_n but_o the_o breach_n between_o rome_n and_o england_n be_v not_o about_o any_o episcopal_a metropolitical_a or_o patriarchall_a right_n a_o patriarch_n have_v more_o power_n in_o his_o proper_a bishopric_n then_o in_o his_o province_n and_o more_o in_o his_o province_n then_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o patriarchate_n but_o papal_a power_n be_v much_o great_a than_o any_o bishop_n do_v ever_o challenge_v in_o his_o own_o diocese_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o assumption_n i_o shall_v show_v sufficient_o who_o they_o be_v that_o break_v this_o bond_n of_o union_n and_o be_v the_o undoubted_a author_n of_o schism_n but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o that_o ordination_n i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o how_o the_o pope_n do_v inherit_v all_o those_o privilege_n which_o he_o claim_v from_o s._n peter_n or_o how_o he_o hold_v they_o by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n in_o holy_a scripture_n first_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n do_v affirm_v confident_o that_o the_o most_o of_o these_o privilege_n be_v the_o legacy_n of_o the_o church_n representative_a not_o christ_n or_o st._n peter_n and_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o true_a by_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 3._o si_fw-mi vobis_fw-la placet_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri_n memoriam_fw-la honoremus_fw-la if_o all_o these_o privilege_n be_v the_o pope_n inheritance_n it_o be_v not_o well_o do_v of_o old_a osius_n to_o put_v it_o upon_o a_o si_fw-mi placet_fw-la content_a or_o not_o content_a and_o to_o assign_v no_o better_o a_o reason_n then_o the_o memory_n of_o a_o predecessor_n it_o seem_v likewise_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o attribute_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o dignity_n of_o that_o imperial_a city_n chalce_v and_o when_o the_o pope_n
affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o king_n of_o england_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o england_n neither_o convocation_n nor_o parliament_n do_v break_v his_o two_o necessary_a bond_n of_o christian_a unity_n or_o either_o of_o they_o or_o any_o part_n of_o either_o of_o they_o but_o that_o the_o very_a breaker_n and_o violator_n of_o these_o rule_n be_v the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n they_o do_v break_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n by_o add_v new_a point_n to_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o save_a truth_n which_o be_v not_o the_o legaceye_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n nor_o deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v break_v his_o second_o rule_n of_o unity_n in_o discipline_n by_o obtrude_a their_o excessive_a and_o intolerable_a usurpation_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o necessary_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n it_o appear_v plain_o by_o compare_v that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v with_o his_o position_n of_o the_o case_n that_o after_o all_o his_o brag_v of_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o unquestionable_a certainty_n he_o have_v quite_o miss_v the_o question_n we_o join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o rule_n of_o faith_n we_o oppose_v not_o st._n peter_n primacy_n of_o order_n and_o he_o himself_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o large_a or_o more_o extend_a power_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n and_o though_o we_o can_v force_v our_o understanding_n to_o assent_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n linus_n or_o cletus_n or_o clemens_n or_o anacle●us_o be_v superior_n to_o s._n john_n and_o have_v actual_a jurisdiction_n over_o he_o who_o have_v as_o large_a a_o commission_n immediate_o from_o christ_n as_o s._n peter_n himself_o and_o large_a than_o any_o succeed_a roman_a bishop_n ever_o have_v yet_o to_o show_v he_o how_o little_a we_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o and_o for_o his_o clear_a conviction_n we_o be_v willing_a to_o suppose_v that_o they_o be_v his_o superior_n and_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o make_v all_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o second_o rule_n which_o he_o can_v in_o this_o cause_n and_o here_o if_o i_o regard_v not_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o myself_o and_o the_o reader_n more_o than_o his_o opposition_n i_o may_v withdraw_v my_o hand_n from_o the_o table_n but_o i_o be_o so_o great_a a_o friend_n of_o ingenuity_n that_o i_o will_v for_o once_o discharge_v his_o office_n and_o show_v the_o world_n demonstrative_o and_o distinct_o what_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o upon_o which_o consideration_n the_o weight_n of_o the_o whole_a controversy_n do_v lie_v for_o it_o be_v agree_v between_o we_o that_o if_o it_o appear_v by_o rigorous_a evidence_n that_o all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v renounce_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v gross_a vsurpatton_n than_o his_o renounce_n be_v no_o eriminall_a breach_n but_o a_o lawful_a self_n enfranchisement_n and_o by_o undeniable_a consequence_n the_o gild_n of_o schism_n rest_v upon_o they_o who_o make_v the_o usurpation_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o add_v further_o upon_o the_o equity_n of_o my_o second_o ground_n that_o although_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v cast_v out_o something_o more_o than_o be_v aught_o yet_o if_o we_o hold_v not_o out_o more_o than_o we_o ought_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o admit_v all_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v admit_v by_o we_o than_o we_o be_v innocent_a and_o free_a from_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n and_o it_o rest_v sole_o upon_o they_o who_o either_o will_v have_v more_o than_o their_o due_a or_o nothing_o wheresoever_o the_o fault_n be_v there_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n be_v if_o the_o fault_n be_v single_a the_o gild_n be_v single_a 6._o if_o the_o fault_n be_v mutual_a the_o gild_n be_v mutual_a and_o for_o rigorous_a evidence_n there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o evidence_n more_o demonstrative_a what_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n than_o the_o very_a act_n of_o parliament_n themselves_o by_o which_o it_o be_v cast_v out_o let_v we_o view_v they_o all_o the_o first_o act_n make_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o which_o have_v any_o referente_fw-la to_o rome_n be_v the_o act_n for_o hold_v plurality_n of_o benefice_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n by_o dispensation_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v licenses_fw-la for_o non_fw-la residence_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v void_a and_o the_o party_n who_o procure_v such_o licenses_fw-la for_o pluralitye_n or_o nonresidence_n to_o forfeit_n twenty_o pound_n and_o to_o lose_v the_o profit_n of_o that_o benefice_n which_o he_o hold_v by_o such_o dispensation_n it_o be_v a_o pretty_a thing_n indeed_o if_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v make_v necessary_a law_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v give_v they_o liberty_n to_o break_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n 9_o the_o second_o act_n be_v that_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o t●e_v diocese_n where_o he_o dwell_v except_o in_o certain_a case_n which_o though_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o it_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o but_o the_o arch_n audience_n and_o other_o archiepiscopall_a court_n within_o the_o realm_n the_o three_o act_n be_v mere_o declarative_a of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n as_o well_o the_o common_a law_n as_o the_o statute_n law_n and_o ground_v whole_o upon_o they_o as_o by_o the_o view_n of_o the_o statute_n itself_o do_v appear_v so_o it_o cast_v out_o no_o foreign_a power_n but_o what_o the_o law_n have_v cast_v out_o before_o 12._o the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o all_o cause_n matrimonial_a testamentary_a or_o about_o tithe_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o final_o judge_v in_o england_n by_o the_o proper_a judge_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a respective_o and_o not_o elsewhere_o notwithstanding_o any_o foreign_a inhibition_n appeal_v sentence_n citation_n suppension_n or_o excommunication_n and_o that_o if_o any_o english_a subject_n procure_v a_o process_n inhibition_n appeal_v etc._n etc._n from_o or_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o execute_v they_o to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o any_o process_n here_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o penalty_n ordain_v by_o the_o statute_n of_o provision_n or_o praemunire_n make_v in_o the_o sixteen_o year_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o against_o such_o as_o make_v provision_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 19_o this_o law_n be_v enlarge_v afterward_o to_o all_o cause_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n and_o all_o appeal_n to_o rome_n forbid_v the_o four_o act_n be_v a_o act_n for_o punish_v of_o heresy_n wherein_o there_o be_v three_o clause_n that_o concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o be_v this_o 14._o and_o that_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n and_o pain_n and_o punishment_n for_o heresy_n declare_v and_o ordain_v in_o and_o by_o the_o canonical_a sanction_n and_o by_o the_o law_n and_o ordination_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n for_o hold_v do_v preach_v of_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o say_v canonical_a sanction_n law_n and_o ordinance_n which_o be_v but_o humane_a be_v mere_a repugnant_a and_o contrarious_a to_o the_o royal_a prerogative_n regal_a jurisdiction_n law_n statute_n and_o ordinance_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o second_o clause_n be_v that_o no_o licence_n be_v obtain_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o preach_v in_o any_o part_n of_o this_o realm_n or_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o statute_n of_o this_o realm_n or_o the_o king_n prerogative_n royal_a the_o three_o clause_n follow_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o confirm_v by_o holy_a scripture_n be_v never_o common_o attest_v to_o be_v any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n within_o this_o realm_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v deem_v heresy_n to_o speak_v or_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o pretend_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n make_v or_o give_v by_o humane_a law_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n nor_o to_o speak_v or_o act_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o five_o act_n be_v a_o act_n concern_v the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o the_o king_n majesty_n 19_o the_o scope_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v not_o assemble_v in_o convocation_n nor_o make_v or_o proniulge_v any_o new_a canon_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n hitherto_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a in_o point_n of_o law_n then_o that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v
have_v no_o coactive_a power_n to_o compel_v any_o man_n against_o his_o will._n the_o uttermost_a they_o can_v do_v be_v to_o separate_v he_o from_o their_o communion_n and_o to_o leave_v he_o to_o the_o come_v or_o judgement_n of_o christ._n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n mar_v a_o atha_fw-mi the_o true_a controversy_n than_o be_v this_o 22._o whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o his_o legate_n have_v coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n to_o convocate_v synod_n of_o english_a subject_n in_o england_n when_o he_o will_v where_o he_o will_v who_o he_o will_v without_o their_o consent_n and_o without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o king_n of_o england_n the_o case_n be_v thus_o state_v determine_v itself_o where_o shall_v the_o pope_n appoint_v a_o place_n of_o meeting_n in_o england_n without_o the_o leave_v of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n we_o see_v by_o often_o experience_n that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o desire_n to_o summon_v a_o council_n in_o italy_n within_o the_o dominion_n of_o another_o sovereign_a prince_n or_o republic_n although_o they_o be_v of_o his_o own_o communion_n he_o must_v first_o ask_v leave_n and_o obtain_v leave_n before_o he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v it_o or_o how_o shall_v he_o pretend_v to_o any_o coactive_a power_n in_o england_n without_o the_o king_n grant_v or_o leave_v where_o the_o power_n of_o the_o militia_n and_o all_o coactive_a force_n be_v legal_o invest_v in_o the_o king_n thus_o for_o point_n of_o right_n now_o for_o matter_n of_o fact_n first_o i_o do_v utter_o deny_v that_o any_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n do_v convocate_v any_o synod_n in_o the_o british_a island_n during_o the_o first_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n or_o preside_v in_o any_o by_o his_o legate_n or_o confirm_v they_o by_o his_o authority_n if_o he_o be_v no_o table_n to_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o instance_n to_o the_o contrary_a he_o may_v cry_v guilty_a to_o the_o usurpation_n where_o of_o he_o be_v accuse_v and_o hold_v his_o peace_n forever_o second_o i_o do_v confess_v that_o after_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n take_v advantage_n of_o our_o civil_a combustion_n and_o prostitute_v the_o reputation_n of_o the_o apostolical_a see_v to_o their_o temporal_a end_n do_v by_o the_o leave_n of_o our_o king_n not_o otherwise_o sometime_o call_v synod_n in_o england_n and_o preside_v in_o they_o the_o first_o synod_n hold_v in_o england_n by_o any_o of_o the_o pope_n legate_n be_v at_o london_n in_o the_o year_n 1125._o by_o joannes_n cremensis_n do●robornensis_n which_o move_v england_n into_o no_o small_a indignation_n to_o see_v a_o thing_n till_o then_o unheard_a of_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n a_o priest_n sit_v precedent_n upon_o a_o high_a throne_n above_o arch_a bishop_n bishop_n bat_n etc._n etc._n but_o remember_v my_o three_o ground_n or_o consideration_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o affirmative_a and_o negative_a precedent_n all_o which_o this_o prove_v be_v that_o the_o king_n do_v give_v leave_n or_o connive_v at_o that_o time_n but_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o can_v prove_v a_o right_a to_o do_v the_o same_o at_o other_o time_n when_o the_o king_n contradict_v it_o further_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n between_o a_o ordinary_a synod_n and_o a_o english_a convocation_n although_o in_o truth_n our_o convocation_n be_v synod_n so_o call_v from_o one_o word_n in_o the_o king_n write_v to_o summon_v they_o convocari_fw-la facias_fw-la all_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o realm_n be_v not_o present_a at_o a_o ordinary_a synod_n but_o all_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v present_a at_o a_o convocation_n either_o in_o their_o person_n or_o by_o their_o proctor_n sufficient_o authorise_v second_o the_o absent_a clergy_n have_v no_o such_o obligation_n to_o the_o act_n of_o a_o papal_a synod_n as_o they_o have_v to_o the_o act_n of_o a_o royal_a convocation_n sub_fw-la hypotheca_fw-la bonorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la under_o the_o caution_n or_o pledge_n of_o all_o their_o good_n and_o estate_n last_o to_o drive_v the_o nail_n home_o and_o to_o demonstrate_v clear_o the_o grossness_n of_o this_o papal_a usurpation_n it_o remain_v only_o to_o show_v that_o by_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n the_o call_n of_o convocation_n or_o synod_n belong_v proper_o to_o the_o king_n not_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o his_o legate_n and_o first_o by_o reason_n by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n more_o ancient_a than_o the_o pope_n intrusion_n no_o roman_a legate_n can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n nor_o continue_v in_o it_o long_o than_o he_o have_v his_o licence_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o convocate_v any_o synod_n nor_o do_v any_o synodical_a act_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n second_o by_o record_n of_o the_o english_a convocation_n itself_o that_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n be_v always_o have_v be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v assemble_v by_o the_o king_n write_v anno_fw-la 1532._o three_o by_o the_o form_n of_o the_o writ_n which_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o succeed_v age_n constant_o direct_v from_o the_o king_n to_o the_o english_a arch_n bishop_n for_o their_o distinct_a province_n the_o very_a form_n speak_v it_o english_a sufficient_o for_o certain_a difficult_a and_o urgent_a business_n concern_v the_o defence_n and_o security_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o the_o peace_n tranquillity_n public_a good_a and_o defence_n of_o our_o kingdom_n and_o subject_n we_o command_v and_o require_v you_o by_o that_o allegiance_n and_o love_n which_o you_o owe_v ●o_o we_o that_o you_o cause_n to_o be_v convocate_v with_o convenient_a speed_n in_o due_a manner_n all_o and_o singular_a bishop_n of_o your_o province_n dean_n and_o prior_n of_o cathedral_n church_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o your_o diocese_n and_o province_n to_o meet_v before_o you_o etc._n etc._n another_o writ_n do_v always_o issue_n from_o the_o king_n for_o the_o dissolution_n we_o command_v you_o that_o you_o dissolve_v or_o cause_n to_o be_v dissolve_v this_o present_a convocation_n this_o very_a day_n in_o due_a manner_n without_o any_o delay_n etc._n etc._n last_o by_o the_o concur_v testimony_n of_o all_o our_o historiographer_n that_o all_o the_o space_n of_o time_n of_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n wherein_o the_o pope_n do_v neither_o call_v counsel_n nor_o preside_v in_o they_o nor_o confirm_v they_o and_o after_o unto_o the_o very_a reformation_n our_o king_n do_v both_o call_v counsel_n and_o preside_v in_o they_o and_o confirm_v they_o and_o own_o their_o law_n as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o by_o the_o law_n of_o ercombert_n ina_n wither_a alfred_n edwerd_n athelstan_n edmund_n edgar_z athelred_n canutus_n and_o edward_n the_o confessor_n in_o my_o vindication_n and_o particular_o that_o theodore_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n preside_v in_o a_o council_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o john_n the_o pope_n legate_n that_o king_n edward_n assemble_v a_o synod_n and_o confirm_v the_o act_n of_o it_o as_o decre●um_fw-la regis_fw-la the_o king_n decree_n that_o king_n wither_a call_v a_o council_n at_o becancelde_n and_o preside_v in_o it_o and_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n issue_v in_o his_o name_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n firmiter_fw-la decernimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n all_o this_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v answer_v but_o it_o be_v with_o deep_a silence_n if_o he_o desire_v more_o precedent_n and_o more_o witness_n he_o may_v have_v a_o cloud_n of_o author_n upon_o hold_v up_o his_o finger_n to_o prove_v undeniable_o that_o king_n henry_n do_v not_o innovate_v at_o all_o in_o challenge_v to_o himself_o the_o right_a to_o convocate_v the_o clergy_n and_o dissolve_v they_o and_o confirm_v their_o act_n with_o in_o his_o own_o dominion_n but_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o his_o ro●al_a predecessor_n in_o all_o age_n from_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o religion_n until_o his_o own_o day_n and_o not_o only_o of_o his_o own_o ancestor_n but_o his_o neighbour_n the_o precedent_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a be_v very_o conspicuous_a to_o omit_v all_o my_o former_a allegation_n in_o this_o behalf_n crab._n in_o the_o french_a synod_n i_o charlemagne_n duke_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o frankes_n by_o the_o advise_v of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o my_o prince_n have_v congregat_v the_o bishop_n which_o be_v in_o my_o kingdom_n with_o the_o priest_n to_o a_o synod_n for_o the_o fear_n of_o christ_n to_o counsel_n i_o how_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o ecclesiastical_a religion_n may_v be_v recover_v which_o in_o the_o day_n of_o forepast_a prince_n be_v dissipate_v and_o fall_v
to_o ruin_v etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o my_o clergy_n and_o prince_n we_o have_v ordain_v bishop_n through_o out_o the_o city_n and_o constitute_v over_o they_o archbishop_n boniface_n the_o pope_n legate_n qui_fw-la est_fw-la missus_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri._n and●we_v have_v decree_v every_o year_n to_o congregate_v a_o synod_n that_o in_o our_o presence_n the_o canonical_a decree_n and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v and_o christian_a religion_n reform_v and_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o arles_n hold_v under_o the_o say_a emperor_n they_o begin_v the_o synod_n with_o a_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o emperor_n the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n establish_v in_o the_o conservation_n of_o his_o faith_n our_o most_o serene_a and_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n charles_n by_o who_o command_n we_o be_v here_o congregat_v and_o they_o conclude_v the_o synod_n with_o a_o submission_n to_o he_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o judge_v worthy_a to_o be_v amend_v we_o have_v brief_o note_v and_o decree_v they_o to_o be_v present_v to_o our_o lord_n the_o emperor_n beseech_v his_o clemency_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v here_o wa●tin●_n it_o may_v be_v supply_v by_o his_o prudence_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o it_o may_v be_v amend_v by_o his_o judgement_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v reasonable_o tax_v it_o may_v be_v perfect_v by_o his_o help_n through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o divine_a clemency_n ibidem_fw-la so_o the_o council_n of_o toures_n begin_v their_o synodical_a act_n that_o which_o be_v enjoin_v we_o by_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n we_o accomplish_v in_o meeting_n at_o the_o time_n and_o place_n appoint_v where_o be_v congregat_v we_o note_v such_o thing_n by_o chapter_n as_o need_v to_o be_v amend_v according_a to_o the_o canonical_a rule_n to_o be_v show_v to_o our_o most_o serene_a emperor_n so_o they_o conclude_v their_o act_n these_o thing_n we_o have_v ventilate_v in_o our_o assembly_n but_o how_o our_o most_o pious_a prince_n will_v be_v please_v to_o dispose_v of_o they_o we_o his_o faithful_a servant_n be_v ready_a at_o his_o beck_n and_o pleasure_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n ibidem_fw-la last_o the_o synod_n call_v synodus_fw-la cabilonensis_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o say_a emperor_n begin_v thus_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n assist_v we_o and_o the_o most_o renown_a emperor_n charles_n command_v we_o &c._n &c._n we_o have_v note_v out_o certain_a chapter_n wherein_o reformation_n seem_v necessary_a to_o we_o which_o be_v hereafter_o insert_v to_o be_v present_v to_o our_o say_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o refer_v to_o his_o most_o sacred_a judgement_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o prudent_a examination_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v reasonable_o decree_v and_o wherein_o we_o have_v be_v defective_a to_o be_v supply_v by_o his_o wisdom_n so_o they_o conclude_v we_o have_v ventilate_v these_o thing_n in_o our_o assembly_n but_o how_o it_o shall_v please_v our_o most_o pion_n prince_n to_o dispose_v of_o they_o we_o his_o faithful_a servant_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n be_v ready_a at_o his_o beck_n and_o pleasure_n one_o egg_n be_v not_o like_a to_o another_o than_o these_o synodical_a representation_n be_v to_o our_o old_a english_a custom_n yet_o these_o be_v catholic_n time_n when_o king_n convocate_v synod_n of_o their_o own_o subject_n and_o either_o confirm_v or_o reject_v their_o act_n as_o they_o think_v meet_v for_o the_o public_a good_a and_o do_v give_v the_o pope_n own_o legate_n his_o power_n of_o preside_v in_o they_o by_o their_o constitution_n who_o join_v with_o the_o rest_n in_o these_o synodical_a acts._n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o branch_n of_o the_o pope_n first_o usurpation_n pope_n concern_v the_o tie_n of_o english_a prelate_n by_o oath_n to_o a_o new_a allegiance_n to_o the_o pope_n no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o supreme_a master_n where_o there_o be_v a_o possibility_n of_o clash_v one_o with_o another_o it_o be_v true_a one_o be_v but_o a_o political_a sovereign_n and_o the_o other_o pretend_v but_o a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n yet_o if_o this_o suppose_a spiritual_a monarch_n shall_v challenge_v either_o a_o direct_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o temporal_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n as_o pope_n boniface_n do_v nos_n nos_fw-la imperia_fw-la regna_fw-la principa●us_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la habere_fw-la mortales_fw-la possunt_fw-la auferre_fw-la &_o dare_v posse_fw-la we_o even_o we_o have_v power_n to_o take_v away_o and_o give_v empire_n kingdom_n principality_n and_o what_o soever_o moral_a man_n be_v capable_a of_o or_o challenge_v a_o indirect_a power_n to_o dispose_v of_o all_o temporal_a thing_n in_o order_n to_o spiritual_a good_a which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o party_n or_o last_o shall_v declare_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a which_o be_v true_o political_a as_o the_o patronage_n of_o church_n and_o all_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o such_o case_n the_o subject_n must_v desert_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o either_o suffer_v just_o as_o a_o traitor_n to_o his_o prince_n or_o be_v subject_v unjust_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v make_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n this_o be_v a_o sad_a case_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o if_o this_o poor_a subject_n shall_v be_v further_o persuade_v that_o his_o spiritual_a prince_n have_v authority_n to_o absolve_v he_o from_o all_o sin_n law_n oath_n know_v that_o his_o temporal_a prince_n do_v challenge_v no_o such_o extravagant_a power_n what_o emperor_n or_o king_n can_v have_v any_o assurance_n of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o his_o own_o natural_a subject_n it_o be_v true_a a_o clerk_n may_v swear_v allegiance_n to_o his_o king_n and_o canonical_a obediente_a to_o his_o bishop_n but_o the_o case_n be_v not_o like_a no_o canonical_a obedience_n either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o consistent_a with_o true_a allegiance_n the_o law_n full_a canon_n oblige_v without_o a_o oath_n and_o all_o that_o coactive_a power_n which_o a_o bishop_n have_v be_v derive_v from_o the_o prince_n and_o subject_v to_o the_o prince_n the_o question_n than_o be_v not_o whether_o a_o pastor_n may_v enjoin_v his_o flock_n to_o abstain_v from_o a_o unjust_a oath_n a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o a_o natural_a prince_n be_v justifiable_a both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n nor_o yet_o whether_o the_o clergy_n have_v immunity_n orought_v to_o enjoy_v immunity_n such_o as_o render_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o serve_v god_n always_o the_o first_o article_n in_o our_o great_a charter_n of_o england_n let_v the_o church_n enjoy_v her_o immunity_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o clergy_n man_n transgress_v of_o the_o canon_n aught_o to_o be_v try_v by_o canonical_a judge_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n especial_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n for_o by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n the_o delinquent_n be_v always_o allow_v the_o liberty_n to_o appeal_v to_o caesar._n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o pope_n by_o any_o act_n or_o decree_n of_o he_o can_v acquit_v english_a subject_n or_o prohibit_v they_o to_o do_v homage_n and_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o their_o king_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n because_o they_o be_v clergyman_n and_o can_v command_v they_o whether_o the_o king_n will_v or_o not_o to_o take_v a_o new_a oath_n never_o hear_v of_o or_o practise_v former_o a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o himself_o so_o it_o be_v call_v express_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o electo_fw-la in_o archiepiscopum_fw-la sedes_fw-la apostolica_fw-la pallium_fw-la non_fw-la tradet_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la praestet_fw-la fidelitatis_fw-la &_o obedientiae_fw-la juramentum_fw-la the_o apostolical_a see_n will_v not_o deliver_v the_o pall_n to_o a_o archbishop_n elect_v unless_o he_o first_o take_v a●_n oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o obedience_n we_o have_v see_v already_o how_o henry_n the_o first_o be_v quiet_o seize_v and_o possess_v of_o the_o homage_n of_o his_o prelate_n and_o their_o oath_n of_o and_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o his_o predecessor_n before_o he_o so_o we_o have_v hear_v platina_n confess_v that_o before_o the_o popedom_n of_o paschalis_n the_o second_o the_o homage_n and_o feudall_a oath_n of_o bishop_n be_v perform_v to_o lay_v man_n that_o be_v to_o king_n not_o pope_n thus_o much_o eadmerus_n and_o nauclerus_fw-la and_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n and_o hoveden_n and_o jorvalensis_n do_v all_o assure_v we_o this_o agree_v sweet_o not_o only_a with_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o feud_n 64._o from_o whence_o they_o borrow_v the_o name_n of_o investiture_n but_o also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o diverse_a toledan_a counsel_n and_o that_o of_o aquisgrane_fw-la which_o who_o so_o desire_v to_o see_v may_v find_v
they_o cite_v at_o large_a by_o king_n james_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o a_o legiance_n 56._o but_o these_o oath_n land_n homage_n and_o regal_a investiture_n as_o th●y_n be_v a_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o unity_n between_o the_o king_n and_o his_o clergy_n so_o they_o be_v a_o great_a eyesore_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o cross_v their_o main_a design_n to_o make_v themselves_o the_o only_a liege_n lord_n of_o the_o ecclesiastic_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o severe_a check_n which_o adrian_n the_o four_o give_v frederick_n the_o first_o for_o require_v homage_n and_o fealty_n of_o bishop_n who_o be_v god_n and_o for_o hold_v their_o sacred_a hand_n in_o his_o hand_n it_o stay_v not_o here_o that_o homage_n and_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n which_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o calixtus_n do_v rob_v the_o king_n of_o their_o immediate_a successor_n paschalis_n the_o second_o do_v assume_v to_o himself_o as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o historiographer_n and_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o paschalis_n himself_o record_v by_o gregory_n the_o nine_o 4._o significasli_n etc._n etc._n thou_o signify_v that_o king_n and_o the_o peer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v move_v with_o admiration_n because_o the_o pall_n be_v offer_v to_o thou_o by_o our_o apocrisiaries_n upon_o condition_n to_o take_v that_o oath_n which_o they_o bring_v thou_o write_v from_o we_o etc._n etc._n the_o admiration_n show_v the_o novelty_n of_o it_o he_o confess_v there_o that_o the_o oath_n be_v not_o establish_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o any_o council_n but_o by_o papal_a authority_n and_o justifi_v it_o for_o fear_v of_o further_a evil_n that_o be_v apostaring_a from_o the_o obedience_n due_a to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n the_o very_a title_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o obedience_n what_o manner_n of_o assurance_n can_v sovereign_a prince_n promise_v themselves_o of_o those_o subject_n who_o have_v swear_v allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o a_o foreign_a prince_n this_o form_n at_o first_o be_v modest_a and_o moderate_a bound_v the_o obedience_n of_o arch-bishop_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o old_a roman_a pontifical_a but_o it_o be_v quick_o change_v from_o regulas_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la to_z regalia_z sancti_fw-la petri_n as_o we_o find_v in_o the_o new_a pontifical_a the_o change_n in_o letter_n be_v not_o great_a but_o in_o the_o sense_n abominable_a semel_fw-la falsus_fw-la semper_fw-la praesumitur_fw-la falsus_fw-la he_o who_o be_v apprehend_v in_o palpable_a forgery_n be_v always_o deserve_o suspect_v of_o forgery_n with_o what_o face_n can_v mr._n serjeant_n tell_v we_o that_o where_o the_o method_n of_o immediate_a tradition_n have_v place_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o encroachment_n to_o gain_v admittance_n where_o be_v see_v such_o hocus_n pocus_fw-la trick_n play_v before_o our_o eye_n in_o their_o pontifical_a bellarmine_n will_v persuade_v we_o that_o in_o st._n gregory_n the_o fir_v time_n there_o be_v such_o a_o oath_n of_o obedience_n full_o make_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 5._o but_o he_o do_v either_o abuse_n himself_o or_o seek_v gross_o to_o abuse_v we_o first_o the_o oath_n mention_v in_o saint_n gregory_n be_v not_o a_o oath_n of_o obedience_n or_o allegiance_n but_o promissio_fw-la cujusdam_fw-la episcopi_fw-la haeresim_fw-la svam_fw-la anathematiz_v any's_o a_o promise_n of_o a_o certain_a bishop_n anathematise_v his_o haeresy_n or_o a_o oath_n of_o abjuration_n second_o the_o oath_n mention_v by_o saint_n gregory_n be_v not_o impose_v by_o his_o authority_n but_o take_v free_o by_o the_o convert_a bishop_n to_o satisfy_v the_o world_n and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o hypocrisy_n ne_fw-la non_fw-la pura_fw-la ment●_n seu_fw-la simulate_v reversus_fw-la existimer_n dictate_v to_o his_o own_o notary_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o clergy_n notario_fw-la meo_fw-la cum_fw-la consensu_fw-la presbyteror●m_fw-la &_o diaconorum_fw-la atque_fw-la clericorum_fw-la scribendum_fw-la dictavi_fw-la it_o be_v no_o common_a case_n of_o all_o bishop_n neither_o do_v it_o comprehend_v any_o such_o obligation_n to_o maintain_v the_o pretend_v royallty_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o as_o they_o extend_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o oath_n so_o they_o do_v the_o subject_a about_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o niuth_v 4._o enlarge_a it_o from_o arch-bishop_n to_o all_o prelate_n bishop_n abbat_n prior_n and_o now_o what_o remain_v but_o to_o cry_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n above_o all_o imperial_a law_n cedant_fw-la arma_fw-la togae_fw-la concedat_fw-la laurea_n linguae_fw-la as_o bellarmine_n do_v who_o deny_v the_o superiority_n of_o prince_n above_o clergyman_n principes_fw-la seculares_fw-la respectu_fw-la clericorum_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la principes_fw-la 28._o prince_n be_v no_o prince_n of_o clerk_n etc._n etc._n political_a law_n have_v no_o coactive_a obligation_n over_o clerk_n but_o only_a directive_n the_o civil_a law_n of_o emperor_n must_v give_v place_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o pope_n what_o new_a monster_n be_v this_o to_o receive_v protection_n from_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n if_o prince_n shall_v put_v church_n man_n out_o of_o their_o protection_n as_o bellarmine_n exempt_v they_o from_o all_o coactive_a obligation_n to_o the_o law_n of_o prince_n they_o will_v quick_o find_v their_o error_n it_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o prince_n to_o preserve_v to_o church_n man_n their_o old_a immunity_n but_o be_v it_o a_o shame_n to_o churchman_n like_o swine_n to_o eat_v the_o fruit_n and_o never_o look_v up_o to_o the_o tree_n from_o whence_o it_o fall_v we_o have_v view_v the_o spoil_n commit_v evident_o when_o and_o by_o who_o he_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o praeserve_v all_o other_o from_o spoil_n can_v not_o preserve_v himself_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n in_o law_n be_o omne_fw-la spolia●us_fw-la resti●ui_fw-la debet_fw-la before_o all_o other_o thing_n he_o that_o be_v spoil_v aught_o to_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o right_n and_o our_o old_a english_a law_n be_v diametral_o opposite_a to_o these_o new_a papal_a usurpation_n in_o all_o the_o part_n of_o they_o first_o though_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v always_o careful_a to_o preserve_v the_o privilege_n of_o holy_a church_n in_o all_o our_o great_a charter_n that_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n be_v take_v care_n for_o yet_o not_o as_o due_a by_o divine_a law_n 4._o and_o much_o less_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o they_o never_o regard_v but_o as_o grace_n and_o privilege_n grant_v by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o they_o exclude_v from_o benefit_n of_o clergy_n such_o sort_n of_o delinquent_n as_o they_o think_v fit_a 2._o as_o proditores_fw-la traitor_n against_o the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n insidiatores_fw-la viarum_fw-la such_o as_o lay_v in_o wait_n to_o do_v mischief_n upon_o the_o highway_n depopulatores_fw-la agrorum_fw-la such_o as_o depopulate_v the_o land_n and_o the_o most_o severe_a law_n that_o ever_o they_o make_v be_v the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n and_o provisor_n against_o churchman_n for_o side_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o usurpation_n even_o to_o the_o forfeiture_n of_o their_o good_n and_o land_n their_o loss_n of_o their_o liberty_n and_o the_o put_v they_o out_o of_o the_o king_n protection_n second_o our_o law_n do_v acknowledge_v every_o where_o that_o homage_n and_o allegiance_n be_v always_o due_a to_o the_o king_n from_o all_o clergyman_n what_o soever_o edward_n the_o first_o enjoin_v all_o the_o prelate_n upon_o their_o faith_n or_o allegiance_n which_o they_o ought_v him_z 2._o they_o know_v no_o fidelity_n or_o allegiance_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o pope_n from_o any_o english_a man_n either_o clergy_n man_n or_o lay_v man_n but_o the_o just_a contrary_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o their_o allegiance_n to_o fight_v for_o the_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o redress_n of_o these_o and_o such_o like_a usurpation_n in_o the_o fourteen_o year_n of_o richard_n the_o second_o all_o the_o spiritual_a lord_n do_v answer_v unanimous_o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n of_o england_n 4._o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o have_v execute_v the_o sentence_n and_o commandment_n of_o the_o king_n the_o same_o be_v against_o the_o king_n and_o his_o crown_n and_o they_o will_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v with_o the_o king_n in_o these_o case_n lawful_o and_o in_o all_o other_o case_n touch_v his_o crown_n and_o his_o regality_n as_o they_o be_v bind_v in_o their_o allegiance_n our_o law_n know_v no_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n or_o fealty_n due_a to_o any_o person_n but_o the_o king_n they_o make_v the_o king_n to_o be_v advowee_n paramont_n 3._o supreme_a lord_n and_o patron_n guardian_n protector_n and_o champion_n of_o th●_n
church_n of_o england_n last_o these_o papal_a oath_n do_v necessary_o suppose_v a_o voyage_n to_o rome_n either_o to_o take_v the_o oath_n there_o or_o if_o the_o oath_n be_v send_v they_o into_o england_n one_o clause_n in_o the_o oath●was_fw-mi that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o rome_n in_o person_n to_o receive_v the_o pope_n command_n within_o a_o prefix_a time_n but_o this_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o england_n which_o allow_v no_o subject_a clergiman_n or_o other_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n without_o the_o king_n leave_v thus_o much_o both_o the_o prelate_n and_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n tell_v anselm_n when_o he_o have_v a_o mi●d_a to_o visit_v the_o pope_n thus_o much_o we_o find_v attest_v by_o the_o general_n assembly_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o statute_n or_o assize_n of_o clarendon_n where_o one_o of_o the_o custom_n or_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v that_o no_o ecclesiastical_a person_n may_v depart_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n no_o hoveden_n not_o though_o he_o be_v express_o summon_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o at_o a_o parliament_n hold_v at_o northampton_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o if_o any_o person_n depart_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n un_o less_o they_o will_v return_v within_o a_o prefix_a time_n and_o answer_v it_o in_o the_o court_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n let_v they_o be_v outlaw_v this_o be_v the_o unanimous_a complaint_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n to_o the_o pope_n 1945._o that_o the_o english_a be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o realm_n by_o his_o authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o kingdom_n no_o clergy_n man_n may_v go_v to_o rome_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n say_v the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n every_o english_a prelate_n shall_v come_v to_o rome_n upon_o my_o command_n say_v the_o pope_n what_o oedipus_n can_v reconcile_v the_o english_a law_n and_o papal_a mandate_n common_o good_a law_n proceed_v from_o evil_a manner_n and_o abuse_n do_v ordinary_o precede_v their_o remedy_n but_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o our_o ancestor_n our_o english_a remedy_n be_v preexistent_a before_o their_o usurpation_n non_fw-la remittitur_fw-la pecca●um_fw-la nisi_fw-la restituatur_fw-la ablatum_fw-la until_o they_o restore_v those_o right_n whereof_o they_o have_v rob_v the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n we_o may_v pardon_v they_o but_o they_o can_v hope_v for_o no_o forgiveness_n from_o god_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o a_o ancient_a fundamental_a law_n in_o the_o britannic_a island_n hist._n another●prince_n ●prince_z profess_v fidelity_n and_o obedience_n to_o any_o one_o beside_o the_o king_n let_v he_o lose_v his_o head_n pope_n i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o first_o papal_a usurpation_n ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n if_o christ_n be_v still_o crucify_v between_o two_o thief_n it_o be_v between_o a_o old_a overgrow_a officer_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o a_o sacrilegious_a precisian_n the_o one_o be_v so_o much_o for_o the_o splendour_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o purity_n of_o religion_n that_o between_o them●_n th●y_v destroy_v religion_n their_o face_n like_o samson_n fox_n lock_v contrary_a way_n but_o both_o of_o they_o have_v firebrand_n at_o their_o tail_n both_o of_o they_o prate_v of_o heaven_n altogether_o both_o of_o they_o have_v their_o heart_n nail_v to_o the_o earth_n on_o the_o one_o side_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v for_o the_o avaricious_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n the_o papacy_n may_v have_v beme_fw-mi a_o great_a advantage_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o point_n of_o order_n and_o unity_n at_o least_o it_o have_v not_o be_v so_o intolerable_a a_o burden_n it_o be_v fear_v these_o will_v not_o suffer_v a_o eugenius_n a_o adrian_n or_o a_o alexander_n to_o be_v both_o honest_a and_o long-lived_a on_o the_o otherside_n these_o counterfeit_n zelots_n do_v but_o renew_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o two_o old_a sicilian_a glutton_n to_o blow_v their_o nose_n in_o the_o dish_n that_o they_o may_v devour_v the_o meat_n alone_o that_o be_v cry_v down_o church_n revenue_n as_o superstitious_a and_o dangerous_a because_o they_o gape_v after_o they_o themselves_o if_o it_o be_v not_o for_o these_o two_o faction_n we_o may_v hope_v to_o see_v a_o reconciliation_n self_n interest_n and_o self_n profit_n be_v both_o the_o procreating_a and_o conserve_n cause_n of_o disunion_n who_o will_v imagine_v that_o the_o large_a patrimony_n of_o st._n peter_n shall_v not_o content_v or_o suffice_v a_o old_a bishop_n abundant_o without_o prey_v upon_o the_o poor_a clergy_n for_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o god_n know_v how_o many_o other_o way_n the_o revennes_n of_o that_o see_v be_v infinite_a yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o ten_o complain_v of_o want_n god_n blessing_n do_v not_o go_v along_o with_o these_o ravenous_a course_n so_o pharohs_o lean_a cow_n devour_v the_o fat_a yet_o be_v nothing_o the_o fat_a themselves_o 1229._o the_o first_o ten_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v from_o the_o english_a clergy_n be_v only_o a_o single_a ten_o of_o their_o movable_a good_n not_o by_o way_n of_o imposition_n but_o as_o a_o benevolence_n or_o free_a gift_n out_o of_o courtesy_n but_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v once_o taste_v the_o sweet_a mean_v not_o to_o give_v over_o so_o non_fw-la missura_fw-la cutem_fw-la nisi_fw-la plena_fw-la cruoris_fw-la ●irudo_fw-la the_o next_o step_n be_v to_o impose_v ten_o upon_o the_o clergy_n not_o in_o perpetuity_n or_o as_o a_o certain_a revenue_n due_a to_o the_o papacy_n but_o for_o a_o fix_a number_n of_o year_n as_o a_o stock_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o christendom_n against_o the_o incursion_n of_o the_o turk_n about_o the_o same_o time_n first_o fruit_n begin_v to_o be_v exact_v not_o general_o but_o only_o of_o the_o pope_n own_o clerk_n as_o a_o gratuity_n or_o in_o plain_a english_a as_o a_o handsome_a cloak_n of_o simony_n but_o he_o that_o perfect_v the_o work_n and_o make_v both_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n a_o certain_a annual_a revenue_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n noni_fw-la be_v boniface_n the_o nine_o or_o john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o his_o successor_n so_o say_v platina_n and_o with_o he_o almost_o all_o other_o writer_n do_v agree_v this_o boniface_n live_v about_o the_o year_n fourteen_o hundred_o who_o turselline_n make_v to_o have_v be_v the_o restorer_n of_o papal_a majesty_n vineislai_n who_o prudence_n do_v transcend_v his_o age_n for_o he_o be_v but_o thirty_o year_n old_a he_o be_v the_o usurper_n that_o take_v away_o from_o the_o roman_n the_o free_a choice_n of_o their_o magistrate_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n some_o thing_n above_o the_o fourteen_o hundred_o year_n it_o be_v he_o that_o call_v the_o council_n and_o be_v himself_o depose_v by_o the_o council_n for_o grievous_a crime_n and_o the_o payment_n of_o first_o fruit_n abolish_v for_o neither_o the_o payment_n of_o ten_o nor_o first_o fruit_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o palate_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n 1182_o notwithstanding_o their_o gild_a pretence_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n decree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o impose_v any_o indiction_n or_o exaction_n upon_o the_o church_n or_o upon_o ecclesiastical_a person_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o ten_o or_o any_o other_o way_n which_o decree_n be_v pass_v in_o the_o nineteen_o session_n though_o it_o be_v relate_v afterward_o 16._o according_a to_o this_o decree_n pope_n martin_n issue_v out_o his_o mandate_n we_o command_v that_o the_o law_n which_o prohibit_v ten_o and_o other_o burden_n to_o be_v impose_v by_o the_o pope_n upon_o church_n and_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v observe_v more_o strict_o and_o the_o council_n of_o ba●ill_n command_v 21._o that_o as_o well_o in_o the_o roman_a court_n as_o elsewhere_o &c_n &c_n nothing_o be_v exact_v for_o ten_o or_o firstfruit_n etc._n etc._n but_o for_o all_o this_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o hold_v their_o hand_n 12._o leo_fw-la the_o ten_o make_v a_o new_a imposition_n for_o three_o year_n ad_fw-la triennium_fw-la proxime_fw-la futurum_fw-la for_o the_o old_a end_n and_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o their_o mind_n be_v that_o thence_o forward_o as_o the_o cause_n last_v so_o shall_v the_o imposition_n but_o the_o german_a nation_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n who_o make_v this_o their_o nineteen_o grievance_n for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v ten_o 19_o which_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n pay_v yearly_a to_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o german_a prince_n some_o year_n since_o do_v consent_n unto_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v pay_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n upon_o condition_n that_o this_o money_n shall_v be_v
deposit_v at_o rome_n as_o a_o stock_n for_o defence_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o no_o otherwise_o but_o the_o time_n be_v efflux_v since_o and_o the_o prince_n have_v learn_v by_o experience_n that_o the_o money_n have_v not_o be_v employ_v against_o the_o turk_n but_o convert_v to_o other_o use_v etc._n etc._n the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n 1522._o as_o appear_v by_o his_o letter_n to_o pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o where_o in_o he_o recite_v the_o same_o fraud_n and_o require_v that_o the_o ten_o may_v be_v detain_v in_o germany_n for_o that_o use_v for_o which_o they_o be_v first_o intend_v last_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v not_o of_o that_o mind_n nor_o intend_v to_o endure_v such_o a_o egregious_a cheat_n any_o long_o so_o extreme_o contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n 1._o and_o destructive_a to_o they_o by_o which_o law_n the_o king_n himself_o who_o only_o have_v legislative_a power_n in_o england_n may_v not_o compel_v his_o subject_n to_o pay_v any_o such_o pension_n without_o the_o good_a will_n and_o assent_v of_o the_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n earls_z baron_n knight_n burgess_n and_o other_o freeman_n of_o the_o land_n much_o less_o can_v a_o foreign_a prince_n or_o praelate_v whatsoever_o he_o be_v impose_v any_o such_o payment_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v so_o often_o condemn_v in_o our_o statute_n of_o provisor_n namely_o the_o impose_v pension_n and_o export_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o realm_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o far_o from_o any_o pretence_n of_o reparation_n curiae_fw-la that_o if_o their_o predecessor_n be_v live_v they_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v restitution_n these_o be_v all_o the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o we_o concern_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n yet_o now_o lest_o he_o shall_v urge_v that_o these_o law_n allege_v by_o i_o be_v singular_a obsolete_a law_n not_o consonant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o other_o christian_a kingdom_n i_o will_v parallel_v they_o with_o the_o law_n and_o liberty_n of_o france_n which_o he_o himself_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_n country_n as_o they_o be_v record_v in_o two_o authentic_a book_n one_o of_o the_o right_n and_o libertye_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n the_o other_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o court_n of_o paris_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n against_o the_o roman_a court_n both_o print_v by_o authority_n first_o for_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n the_o four_o liberty_n be_v the_o king_n have_v power_n to_o assemble_v or_o cause_n to_o be_v assemble_v synod_n provincial_n or_o national_n and_o therein_o to_o treat_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a order_n the_o seven_o liberty_n be_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o french_a church_n although_o command_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o what_o cause_n so_o ever_o it_o be_v may_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n without_o the_o king_n commandment_n a●d_v licence_n the_o eleven_o liberty_n be_v the_o pope_n can_v impose_v pension_n in_o france_n upon_o any_o benefice_n have_v cure_n of_o soul_n nor_o upon_o any_o other_o but_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n etc._n etc._n the_o fourteen_o liberty_n be_v ecclesiastical_a person_n may_v be_v convent_v judge_v and_o sentence_v before_o a_o secular_a judge_n for_o the_o first_o enormous_a crime_n or_o for_o lesser_a offence_n after_o a_o relapse_n the_o fifteen_o liberty_n be_v all_z the_o prelate_v of_o france_n be_v oblige_v to_o swear_v fealty_n to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o receive_v from_o he_o their_o investiture_n for_o their_o fee_n and_o manor_n the_o nineteen_o liberty_n be_v provision_n reservation_n expectative_a grace_n have_v no_o place_n in_o france_n this_o be_v the_o brief_a sum_n of_o those_o liberty_n which_o concern_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n agree_v perfect_o with_o our_o old_a english_a custom_n i_o shall_v show_v he_o the_o same_o perfect_a harmony_n between_o their_o church_n liberty_n and_o our_o english_a custom_n the_o assize_n of_o clarendon_n the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n and_o praemunire_n through_o out_o either_o mr._n sergeant_n must_v make_v the_o gallican_n church_n schismatical_a which_o he_o dare_v not_o do_v and_o if_o i_o conjecture_v right_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o do_v or_o he_o must_v acknowledge_v our_o english_a law_n to_o be_v good_a catholic_n law_n for_o company_n sect._n i._n cap._n vi_o the_o next_o usurpation_n which_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n be_v the_o pope_n legislative_a power_n over_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n england_n either_o in_o his_o person_n or_o by_o his_o legate_n for_o the_o clear_a understanding_n whereof_o the_o reader_n in_o the_o first_o place_n may_v be_v please_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o honour_v they_o more_o than_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o as_o be_v select_v ou●_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o primitive_a counsel_n before_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v challenge_v any_o plenitude_n of_o legislative_a power_n in_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n of_o which_o king_n james_n say_v most_o true_o 1._o that_o publica_n ordinum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la sanctione_n rec●pta_fw-la sunt_fw-la they_o be_v receive_v into_o our_o law_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o just_a canon_n of_o counsel_n lawful_o congregat_v and_o lawful_o proceed_v have_v power_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n of_o subject_n as_o much_o as_o political_a law_n in_o themselves_o not_o from_o themselves_o as_o be_v humane_a law_n but_o from_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n who_o command_v obedience_n of_o subject_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o superior_n 39_o we_o receive_v the_o canon_n of_o other_o primitive_a counsel_n but_o not_o with_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o reverence_n as_o we_o do_v the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n no_o more_o do_v s._n gregory_n of_o old_a no_o more_o do_v the_o pope_n now_o in_o his_o solemn_a profession_n of_o his_o faith_n at_o his_o election_n to_o the_o papacy_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o which_o restrain_v they_o restrain_v we_o i_o be_o more_o trouble_v to_o think_v how_o the_o pope_n shall_v take_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a monarch_n and_o yet_o take_v such_o a_o solemn_a oath_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o undivided_a trinity_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o keep_v the_o fait●_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o the_o least_o tittle_n what_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v in_o this_o great_a controversy_n about_o the_o papacy_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o six_o teenth_fw-mi session_n and_o the_o acclamation_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n haec_fw-la justa_fw-la sententia_fw-la haec_fw-la omnes_fw-la dicimus_fw-la haec_fw-la omnibus_fw-la placent_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o be_v a_o just_a sentence_n these_o thing_n we_o all_o say_v these_o thing_n please_v we_o all_o &c_n &c_n second_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o bishop_n be_v always_o esteem_v the_o proper_a judge_n of_o the_o canon_n both_o for_o compose_v of_o they_o and_o for_o execute_v of_o they_o but_o with_o this_o caution_n that_o to_o make_v they_o law_n the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v require_v 5_o and_o to_o give_v the_o bishop_n a_o coactive_a power_n to_o execute_v they_o the_o prince_n grant_v or_o concession_n be_v needful_a the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o caution_n be_v evident_a in_o justinians_n confirmation_n of_o the_o five_o general_n synod_n haec_fw-la pro_fw-la communi_fw-la pace_n ecclesiarum_fw-la sanctissimarum_fw-la statuimus_fw-la haec_fw-la sententiavimus_fw-la sequentes_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrun_v dogmata_fw-la etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n we_o ordain_v these_o thing_n we_o have_v sentence_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n etc._n etc._n quae_fw-la sacerdotio_fw-la visa_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la imperio_fw-la confirmata_fw-la which_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o caution_n be_v evident_a out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n qui_fw-la decimam_fw-la de●inuerit_fw-la hoveden_n per_fw-la justitiam_fw-la episcopi_fw-la &_o regis_fw-la si_fw-la necesse_fw-la fury_n ad_fw-la soluttionem_fw-la arguatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o shall_v detain_v his_o tithe_n let_v he_o be_v convince_v to_o pay_v it_o by_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a of_o the_o king_n for_o these_o thing_n s._n austin_n preach_v and_o teach_v and_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v both_o tithe_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v grant_v from_o the_o king_n the_o baron_n and_o the_o people_n so_o hitherto_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betweme_v we_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o king_n
whole_a circuit_n of_o cathage_n with_o a_o bull_n hide_v by_o her_o art_n so_o he_o within_o his_o first_o movership_n can_v comprehend_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o the_o right_a to_o convocate_v and_o dissolve_v and_o confirm_v english_a synod_n and_o to_o invalidate_v old_a oath_n and_o to_o impose_v new_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o to_o receive_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o all_o legislative_a judiciary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n coactive_o in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n over_o english_a subject_n he_o can_v plead_v any_o charter_n from_o england_n we_o never_o make_v any_o such_o grant_v and_o although_o we_o have_v yet_o consider_v how_o infinite_o prejudicial_a it_o be_v to_o the_o public_a tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n we_o may_v and_o ought_v more_o advise_o to_o retract_v what_o we_o unadvised_o once_o resolve_v and_o for_o prescription_n he_o be_v so_o far_o to_o seek_v that_o there_o be_v a●_n clear_a prescription_n of_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n against_o he_o so_o there_o be_v nothing_o remain_v for_o he_o to_o stick_v to_o but_o his_o empty_a pretence_n of_o divine_a right_n which_o be_v more_o ridiculous_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o claim_v a_o divine_a right_n of_o such_o a_o sovereign_a power_n which_o do_v branch_n itself_o into_o so_o many_o particular_n after_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n which_o for_o so_o many_o age_n have_v never_o be_v acknowledge_v never_o practise_v in_o the_o english_a church_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n we_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v mole-eyed_n or_o do_v sit_v in_o darkness_n for_o so_o many_o century_n of_o year_n until_o pope_n hildebrand_n and_o pope_n paschalis_n do_v start_v up_o like_o two_o new_a light_n with_o their_o weapon_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o thump_v prince_n and_o knock_v they_o into_o a_o right_a catholic_n belief_n and_o indeed_o this_o answer_n to_o his_o pretend_a demonstration_n by_o a_o real_a demonstration_n where_o the_o true_a controversy_n do_v lie_v and_o who_o be_v the_o true_a innovator_n do_v virtual_o answer_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v say_v so_o i_o may_v just_o stop_v here_o and_o suspend_v my_o former_a pain_n but_o that_o i_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n to_o try_v if_o i_o can_v find_v out_o one_o of_o those_o many_o falsification_n and_o contradiction_n which_o he_o will_v make_v n_n believe_v he_o have_v espy_v in_o my_o discourse_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o deception_n of_o his_o sight_n first_o probable_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o best_a champion_n do_v grant_v that_o our_o faith_n and_o its_o ground_n be_v but_o probable_a sure_o he_o do_v write_v this_o between_o sleep_v and_o wake_v when_o he_o can_v not_o well_o distinguish_v between_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o indifferent_a opinion_n concern_v point_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o use_v cajetans_n expression_n between_o determinare_fw-la de_fw-la fideformaliter_fw-la and_o determinare_fw-la de_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la fidei_fw-la materialiter_fw-la between_o point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o such_o question_n as_o do_v sometime_o happen_v in_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o for_o essentials_n of_o faith_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o found_v more_o firm_o than_o our_o belief_n upon_o that_o undoubted_a rule_n of_o vincentius_n quicquid_fw-la ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o we_o believe_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o have_v for_o it_o the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n and_o therein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o but_o they_o have_v no_o such_o perpetual_a or_o universal_a tradition_n for_o their_o twelve_o new_a article_n of_o pope_n pius_n this_o objection_n will_v have_v become_v i_o much_o better_a than_o he_o whatsoever_o we_o believe_v they_o believe_v and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n of_o all_o place_n and_o all_o age_n do_v now_o believe_v and_o ever_o do_v believe_v except_o condemn_a heretic_n but_o they_o endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v new_a essentials_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o have_v no_o such_o perpetual_a no_o such_o universal_a tradition_n he_o that_o accuse_v another_o shall_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o himself_o do_v not_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n stand_v now_o otherwise_o in_o order_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o it_o do_v in_o henry_n the_o seven_n day_n he_o add_v further_a that_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o papal_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v cast_n out_o of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o day_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mutation_n concern_v faith_n nor_o concern_v any_o legacy_n which_o christ_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n nor_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a but_o concern_v coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n concern_v the_o political_a or_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o patronage_n or_o civil_a sovereignty_n over_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o legislative_a judiciary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o england_n over_o english_a subject_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o reinfranchisement_n of_o ourselves_o from_o the_o upstart_n usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n of_o all_o which_o i_o have_v show_v he_o express_o the_o first_o source_n who_o begin_v they_o when_o and_o where_o before_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v one_o instance_n of_o any_o such_o practice_n attempt_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o admit_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o it_o be_v that_o look_v asquint_o or_o awry_o upon_o the_o true_a case_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o let_v the_o ingenuous_a reader_n judge_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v nor_o ever_o do_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a separation_n make_v yea_o make_v by_o we_o from_o their_o usurpation_n but_o i_o both_o do_v deny_v and_o do_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o separation_n make_v by_o we_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n or_o from_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n this_o separation_n be_v make_v long_o since_o by_o themselves_o when_o they_o first_o introduce_v those_o novelty_n into_o the_o church_n and_o this_o separation_n of_o they_o from_o the_o pure_a primitive_a doctrine_n and_o discipiine_n of_o the_o church_n do_v acquit_v we_o and_o render_v they_o guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n before_o god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o impertinent_a allegation_n of_o he_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o governor_n may_v lawful_o declare_v themselves_o public_o and_o solemn_o against_o the_o renouncer_n of_o their_o authority_n by_o excommunication_n unless_o he_o can_v show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v such_o a_o absolute_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o as_o he_o imagine_v extend_v itself_o to_o all_o those_o act_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o that_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n they_o procee_v due_o in_o a_o legal_a manner_n and_o especial_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mistake_v their_o own_o usurpation_n for_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o affirm_v and_o know_v they_o do_v his_o whole_a discourse_n about_o immediate_a tradition_n be_v a_o bundle_n of_o uncertain_a presumption_n and_o vain_a supposition_n first_o he_o suppose_v that_o his_o rule_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o multitude_n of_o eye-witness_n of_o visible_a thing_n be_v uniform_a and_o universal_a but_o he_o be_v quite_o mistake_v the_o practi●e_n be_v different_a the_o papalm_n make_v law_n for_o their_o usurpation_n and_o the_o three_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n make_v law_n against_o they_o to_o who_o in_o probability_n shall_v our_o ancestor_n adhere_v to_o their_o ow●_n patriot_n or_o to_o stranger_n second_o he_o presume_v that_o this_o uniform_a practice_n of_o his_o ancestor_n be_v invariable_a without_o any_o shadow_n of_o change_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o less_o first_o investiture_n be_v in_o the_o crown_n and_o a_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n make_v to_o the_o king_n without_o any_o scruple_n even_o by_o lanfranke_n and_o anselm_n both_o stranger_n afterward_o the_o investiture_n be_v decry_v as_o profane_v and_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n forbid_v next_o a_o new_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v devise_v of_o clergiman_n to_o the_o pope_n first_o only_a for_o archbishop_n then_o for_o all_o prelate_n and_o this_o oath_n at_o first_o be_v moderate_a to_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o short_o after_o more_o tyrannous_a to_o maintain_v the_o royalty_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o their_o own_o pontifical_n the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a do_v witness_v first_o when_o they_o take_v away_o investiture_n from_o the_o crown_n they_o be_v all_o
of_o peace_n closet_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v as_o confident_a as_o gawen_v the_o best_a statute_n he_o can_v pick_v out_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a how_o do_v he_o know_v that_o we_o all_o see_v he_o never_o read_v it_o nor_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o statute_n or_o no._n then_o he_o tell_v we_o there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n in_o it_o concern_v spiritual_a jurisdiction_n well_o guess_v by_o instinct_n but_o for_o once_o his_o instinct_n have_v deceive_v he_o if_o excommunication_n be_v any_o part_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o syllable_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n in_o it_o but_o concern_v our_o english_a statute_n both_o ancient_a and_o new_a which_o concern_v the_o cast_n of_o papal_a authority_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n i_o have_v give_v he_o a_o full_a satisfactory_a account_n former_o to_o which_o i_o refer_v he_o we_o have_v see_v how_o careless_a he_o be_v in_o read_v over_o law_n before_o he_o answer_v they_o now_o let_v we_o observe_v the_o same_o oscitance_n or_o want_n of_o ingenuity_n towards_o his_o adversary_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v what_o he_o get_v by_o his_o falsification_n nempe_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la veneri_fw-la donatae_fw-la a_o virgine_fw-la puppae_fw-la real_a falsification_n retort_v upon_o he_o instead_o of_o his_o feign_a one_o he_o answer_v that_o to_o limit_v a_o authority_n imply_v a_o admittance_n of_o it_o in_o case_n to_o which_o the_o limitation_n extend_v not_o i_o reply_v that_o these_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n do_v not_o only_o limit_v a_o authority_n but_o deny_v it_o that_o be_v deny_v it_o in_o such_o and_o such_o case_n mention_v in_o the_o law_n deny_v it_o coactive_o in_o the_o exterior_a court_n without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n so_o the_o law_n may_v differ_v the_o restraint_n may_v differ_v the_o leave_n may_v differ_v in_o degree_n according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o place_n notwithstanding_o this_o denial_n that_o which_o he_o beat_v at_o be_v this_o that_o we_o deny_v all_o papal_a power_n whatsoever_o but_o other_o church_n do_v only_o limit_v it_o i_o answer_v we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n all_o manner_n of_o power_n we_o deny_v he_o not_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n we_o deny_v he_o not_o any_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a we_o deny_v he_o not_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n if_o he_o can_v he_o contend_v with_o it_o but_o we_o deny_v he_o all_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n over_o the_o subject_n of_o other_o prince_n without_o the_o sovereign_n leave_n if_o some_o prince_n give_v more_o leave_n than_o other_o as_o find_v it_o more_o expedient_a for_o their_o affair_n we_o do_v not_o envy_v it_o but_o he_o urge_v that_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v equivalent_a law_n in_o france_n spain_n germany_n italy_n 21._o i_o neither_o deny_v it_o nor_o affirm_v it_o or_o i_o affirm_v it_o only_o in_o part_n yes_o there_o be_v some_o such_o law_n in_o all_o these_o place_n by_o he_o mention_v perhaps_o not_o so_o many_o but_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o french_a church_n be_v much_o the_o same_o with_o the_o english_a some_o such_o law_n not_o so_o many_o much_o the_o same_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o equivalence_n or_o if_o he_o will_v call_v they_o equivalent_a it_o be_v only_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la not_o simpliciter_fw-la respective_o in_o some_o case_n not_o universal_o in_o all_o case_n but_o he_o have_v another_o place_n which_o strike_v home_o 73._o where_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o like_a law_n may_v be_v find_v in_o germany_n poland_n france_n spain_n italy_n sicily_n and_o if_o we_o will_v trust_v padre_n paolo_n the_o papacy_n itself_o but_o do_v either_o i_o or_o padre_n paolo_n speak_v of_o those_o ancient_a english_a law_n by_o i_o cite_v make_v to_o restrain_v the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o he_o say_v but_o it_o be_v a_o gross_a falsification_n i_o do_v neither_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o that_o place_n nor_o padre_n paolo_n but_o we_o both_o speak_v of_o another_o law_n of_o a_o quite_o different_a nature_n from_o these_o that_o be_v the_o law_n of_o mortmain_n a_o law_n mere_o political_a to_o restrain_v man_n from_o give_v land_n to_o the_o church_n without_o licence_n of_o this_o i_o say_v there_o be_v find_v like_o law_n to_o it_o in_o germany_n poland_n france_n spain_n italy_n sicily_n and_o padre_n paolo_n add_v in_o the_o papacy_n itself_o what_o a_o adversary_n have_v i_o to_o deal_v with_o who_o either_o understand_v not_o what_o the_o law_n of_o mortmain_n be_v or_o regard_v not_o how_o he_o falsify_v his_o adversary_n word_n but_o from_o these_o mistake_v and_o misshape_a premise_n he_o draw_v ten_o conclusion_n every_o one_o of_o they_o drive_v i_o to_o a_o contradiction_n or_o absurdity_n at_o least_o the_o first_o second_n three_o and_o four_o be_v the_o same_o in_o effect_n or_o all_o comprehend_v in_o the_o first_o that_o it_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o general_a opinion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n catholic_n protestant_n puritan_n second_o that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o extol_v that_o happy_a time_n when_o england_n be_v free_v from_o the_o yoke_n of_o rome_n three_o that_o it_o contradict_v our_o reformation_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n there_o can_v be_v no_o reformation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o otherwise_o before_o and_o therefore_o henry_n the_o eight_o add_v something_o of_o his_o own_o to_o these_o ancient_a law_n four_o he_o say_v that_o doctor_n hammond_n acknowledge_v that_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o day_n and_o the_o six_o be_v that_o this_o position_n be_v particular_o opposite_a to_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n country_n who_o all_o look_v on_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o as_o schismatical_a doubtless_o he_o mean_v roman_a catholic_n country_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o general_n opinion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n unless_o he_o add_v protestant_n and_o reformer_n and_o doctor_n hammond_n and_o roman_a catholic_n as_o if_o they_o be_v none_o of_o the_o world_n reader_n i_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o henry_n the_o eighths_n law_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v no_o new_a law_n but_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n i_o have_v do_v it_o by_o produce_v the_o ancient_a law_n themselves_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n old_a and_o i_o be_o yet_o ready_a to_o show_v further_o that_o they_o be_v no_o new_a law_n then_o but_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o england_n derive_v from_o the_o first_o sound_n of_o the_o british_a and_o english_a church_n as_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o to_o all_o my_o premise_n or_o particularity_n as_o he_o call_v they_o he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o answer_v nothing_o but_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o canon_n and_o secular_a lawyer_n to_o scuffle_v about_o they_o but_o he_o utter_o deny_v my_o conclusion_n what_o a_o absurdity_n that_o be_v he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a but_o alas_o what_o do_v the_o world_n know_v of_o the_o municipal_a law_n of_o england_n until_o we_o instruct_v they_o better_o and_o what_o opinion_n can_v foreigner_n have_v of_o we_o but_o what_o they_o learn_v from_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n we_o acknowledge_v with_o doctor_n hammond_n that_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o time_n but_o we_o add_v not_o by_o the_o creation_n of_o new_a law_n but_o by_o the_o vigorous_a execution_n of_o the_o ancient_a law_n be_v first_o renew_v and_o confirm_v by_o himself_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v final_o shake_v of_o the_o yoke_n of_o rome_n which_o can_v not_o have_v be_v do_v if_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o to_o have_v be_v shake_v of_o or_o reform_v but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o his_o predecessor_n do_v attempt_v to_o shake_v it_o of_o long_o before_o even_o at_o the_o first_o appear_v of_o it_o yea_o and_o do_v actual_o shake_v it_o of_o for_o a_o time_n in_o a_o great_a part_n his_o five_o objection_n be_v that_o according_a to_o i_o the_o law_n make_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o former_a law_n where_o do_v i_o say_v so_o until_o he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v it_o i_o which_o i_o shall_v expect_v at_o the_o greek_a calends_o i_o shall_v score_v it_o up_o among_o his_o lesser_a falsification_n and_o for_o his_o inference_n which_o he_o make_v that_o he_o never_o hear_v it_o pretend_v that_o they_o do_v shake_v of_o the_o roman_a yoke_n in_o part_n or_o for_o a_o time_n therefore_o they_o do_v it_o not_o it_o show_v but_o his_o ignorance_n in_o
do_v not_o mean_v that_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a be_v to_o be_v win_v by_o the_o sword_n but_o i_o believe_v that_o exemtion_n from_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n be_v to_o be_v win_v by_o the_o sword_n so_o the_o scot_n ease_v the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o province_n so_o just_a conqueror_n may_v and_o do_v often_o change_v the_o external_a policy_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o public_a good_a he_o bid_v i_o show_v that_o the_o english_a bishop_n be_v impower_v by_o the_o british_a bishop_n or_o else_o let_v i_o confess_v that_o they_o can_v inherit_v no_o privilege_n from_o they_o i_o can_v show_v he_o that_o i_o myself_o be_v impower_v and_o do_v receive_v my_o episcopal_a ordination_n from_o the_o ancient_a scotch_a bishop_n by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n and_o many_o english_a bishop_n have_v receive_v their_o order_n mediate_o or_o immediate_o from_o the_o british_a bishop_n i_o say_v most_o true_o that_o before_o he_o can_v allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o appeal_v to_o rome_n he_o must_v renounce_v the_o divine_a institution_n of_o the_o papacy_n or_o at_o least_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o papacy_n because_o that_o canon_n submit_v it_o to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ground_v it_o upon_o the_o memory_n of_o st._n peter_n not_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n the_o reason_n of_o this_o consequence_n be_v most_o evident_a for_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n will_v not_o nor_o can_v have_v submit_v that_o which_o be_v the_o pope_n right_a by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n whether_o he_o shall_v have_v it_o or_o not_o nor_o will_v have_v assign_v their_o respect_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o saint_n peter_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o that_o for_o which_o they_o have_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n do_v submit_v the_o pope_n right_a to_o receive_v appeal_v to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n placetne_n do_v it_o please_v you_o that_o we_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o st._n peter_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o hold_v this_o right_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o receive_v appeal_v to_o be_v due_a to_o the_o pope_n by_o christ_n own_o ordinance_n or_o commandment_n this_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v a_o flat_a falsification_n of_o the_o council_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o it_o either_o concern_v papal_a power_n itself_o or_o its_o institution_n but_o concern_v appeal_v only_o i_o be_o grow_v pretty_a well_o acquaint_v with_o his_o falsification_n do_v i_o say_v there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o council_n concern_v the_o papacy_n or_o institution_n of_o it_o if_o i_o do_v let_v he_o tell_v we_o where_o and_o when_o or_o else_o it_o be_v his_o own_o falsification_n but_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n there_o be_v something_o in_o the_o council_n concern_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o be_v submit_v by_o the_o council_n to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n and_o no_o high_a ground_n assign_v for_o it_o than_o the_o respect_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o st._n peter_n yet_o this_o right_n of_o receive_v appeal_v be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o all_o his_o partaker_n a_o essential_a branch_n of_o papal_a power_n therefore_o if_o he_o and_o his_o partaker_n say_v true_a the_o council_n of_o sardica_n do_v submit_v a_o essential_a branch_n of_o papal_a power_n or_o papal_a power_n in_o part_n to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v they_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n by_o this_o time_n i_o hope_v he_o understand_v my_o meaning_n better_o he_o presume_v that_o some_o british_a bishop_n sit_v in_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o may_v be_v athanasius_n intimate_v as_o much_o he_o presume_v that_o they_o assent_v to_o the_o sardican_a canon_n about_o appeal_v it_o may_v be_v or_o it_o may_v not_o be_v i_o shall_v rather_o assent_v to_o their_o vote_v to_o acquit_v athanasius_n who_o testify_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v right_a to_o the_o nicene_n faith_n jovinia_n but_o sure_o among_o all_o the_o subscibers_n in_o the_o sardican_a council_n there_o be_v not_o one_o british_a bishop_n name_v and_o in_o the_o synodall_n letter_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o wherein_o they_o reckon_v all_o the_o province_n britain_n be_v not_o name_v but_o what_o be_v the_o right_n of_o receive_v appeal_v to_o a_o universal_a monarchy_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o council_n to_o christ_n own_o ordination_n if_o we_o will_v be_v content_v to_o abrogate_v our_o old_a law_n and_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n leave_v to_o execute_v that_o power_n which_o the_o sardican_a father_n do_v give_v he_o he_o will_v scorn_v it_o and_o much_o more_o their_o manner_n of_o give_v it_o 3._o si_fw-mi vobis_fw-la placet_fw-la if_o it_o please_v you_o or_o of_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o your_o charity_n let_v we_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o the_o greek_a edition_n have_v it_o i_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v no_o general_n council_n after_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n be_v depart_v not_o out_o of_o any_o ill_a will_n to_o athanasius_n or_o favour_n to_o the_o arrian_n as_o for_o arrianisme_n the_o sardican_a father_n do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o nicene_n have_v do_v before_o they_o but_o out_o of_o another_o consideration_n because_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o five_o great_a patriarch_n with_o their_o respective_a bishop_n or_o at_o least_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v ever_o more_o hold_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o general_n council_n as_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v that_o the_o seven_o synod_n judge_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n against_o image_n to_o have_v be_v no_o general_n council_n 17._o because_o it_o have_v not_o patriarch_n enough_o if_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n have_v be_v a_o general_n council_n why_o do_v st._n gregory_n the_o great_a isiodore_n and_o venerable_n bede_n quite_o omit_v it_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o general_n counsel_n why_o do_v st._n austin_n alypius_n and_o the_o african_a father_n sleight_v it_o and_o which_o be_v more_o than_o all_o this_o why_o do_v the_o eastern_a church_n not_o reckon_v it_o among_o their_o seven_o general_n counsel_n nor_o the_o western_a church_n among_o their_o eight_o first_o general_n counsel_n to_o conclude_v why_o do_v the_o english_a church_n leave_v the_o sardican_a council_n out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o general_n counsel_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o hedtfelde_n in_o the_o year_n 680_o and_o embrace_v only_o these_o for_o general_n counsel_n until_o that_o day_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o first_o of_o constantinople_n the_o first_o of_o ephesus_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o second_o of_o chalcedon_n 169._o here_o he_o may_v see_v a_o plain_a reason_n why_o i_o say_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v never_o incorporate_v into_o the_o english_a law_n i_o will_v know_v whether_o he_o or_o i_o be_v of_o the_o old_a english_a religion_n in_o this_o point_n the_o five_o first_o general_n counsel_n be_v incorporate_v into_o the_o law_n of_o england_n but_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v none_o of_o they_o therefore_o no_o general_n council_n i_o have_v give_v he_o a_o further_a account_n concern_v this_o council_n sect._n 1_o c._n 7._o to_o which_o i_o refer_v he_o i_o say_v and_o i_o say_v most_o true_o that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o sardican_a council_n touch_v appeal_v be_v never_o receive_v in_o england_n nor_o incorporate_v into_o our_o english_a law_n for_o proof_n hereof_o i_o bring_v he_o a_o evident_a demonstration_n out_o of_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v record_v in_o that_o famous_a memorial_n of_o clarendon_n all_o appeal_v in_o england_n must_v proceed_v regular_o from_o the_o archdeacon_n to_o the_o bishop_n from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o archbishop_n and_o if_o the_o archbishop_n fail_v to_o do_v justice_n the_o last_o complaint_n must_v be_v to_o the_o king_n to_o give_v order_n for_o redress_v our_o ancestor_n have_v not_o so_o much_o respect_n for_o pope_n julius_n nor_o thought_n appeal_v to_o rome_n any_o honour_n to_o the_o memory_n of_o st._n peter_n i_o say_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v contradict_v after_o by_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n he_o rejune_v that_o i_o neither_o think_v the_o word_n worth_a cite_n nor_o the_o canon_n where_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o sardican_a canon_n be_v find_v worth_n mention_v pardon_v i_o i_o say_v nothing_o of_o abrogation_n but_o i_o do_v say_v it_o contradict_v it_o and_o for_o proof_n of_o the_o
apostolical_a bishop_n and_o his_o primacy_n of_o order_n so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n think_v fit_a to_o continue_v it_o to_o that_o see_v if_o this_o will_v content_v he_o to_o my_o three_o reason_n he_o except_v if_o monarchy_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n the_o venetian_n and_o the_o hollander_n be_v in_o a_o sad_a case_n i_o be_o glad_a when_o i_o find_v any_o thing_n in_o he_o that_o have_v but_o a_o resemblance_n of_o matter_n more_o than_o wind_n and_o empty_a word_n although_o they_o weigh_v nothing_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v examine_v the_o venetian_n and_o hollander_n may_v be_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o such_o rash_a censurer_n as_o himself_o be_v who_o have_v learn_v their_o theology_n and_o politic_n but_o by_o the_o half_n who_o teach_v he_o to_o argue_v from_o the_o position_n of_o one_o lawful_a form_n of_o government_n to_o the_o denial_n of_o another_o all_o lawful_a form_n of_o government_n be_v warrant_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o have_v their_o institution_n from_o god_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n 1._o whether_o they_o be_v monarchical_a or_o aristocratical_a or_o democraticall_a man_n prepare_v the_o body_n god_n infuse_v the_o soul_n of_o power_n which_o be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o lawful_a form_n but_o though_o all_o lawful_a form_n of_o government_n be_v warrant_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n yet_o not_o all_o in_o the_o same_o degree_n of_o eminency_n there_o be_v but_o one_o soul_n in_o the_o body_n one_o sun_n in_o the_o heaven_n one_o master_n in_o a_o family_n and_o ancient_o one_o monarch_n in_o each_o society_n all_o the_o first_o governor_n be_v king_n the_o soul_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o form_n but_o the_o organ_n be_v more_o apt_a to_o attain_v its_o end_n in_o one_o form_n then_o another_o in_o monarchy_n then_o in_o aristocracy_n or_o democracy_n and_o we_o say_v god_n and_o nature_n do_v always_o intend_v that_o which_o be_v best_a thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v warrant_v sufficient_a for_o any_o form_n of_o government_n but_o in_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o god_n he_o never_o institute_v or_o authorize_v any_o form_n but_o monarchy_n in_o the_o last_o paragraph_n where_o i_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n headship_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o of_o divine_a institution_n he_o except_v that_o it_o be_v my_o bare_a say_n and_o my_o old_a ●rick_n to_o say_v over_o again_o the_o very_a point_n in_o dispute_n between_o we_o if_o this_o be_v the_o very_a point_n in_o dispute_n between_o we_o as_o it_o be_v indeed_o it_o be_v more_o shame_n for_o he_o who_o let_v the_o very_a point_n in_o dispute_n alone_o and_o never_o offer_v to_o come_v near_o it_o especial_o have_v make_v such_o loud_a brag_n that_o he_o will_v charge_v the_o crime_n of_o schism_n upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o prove_v the_o pope_n headship_n of_o jurisdiction_n or_o power_n by_o a_o more_o ample_a clear_a and_o continue_a title_n than_o any_o right_n of_o law_n or_o humane_a ordinance_n can_v offer_v quid_fw-la tanto_fw-la dignum_fw-la tulit_fw-la hic_fw-la promise_v or_o hia●u_n as_o for_o my_o part_n i_o know_v my_o obligation_n while_o i_o be_o upon_o the_o defensive_a to_o make_v good_a my_o ground_n and_o when_o it_o be_v my_o turn_n to_o assault_v i_o shall_v discharge_v my_o duty_n if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o the_o huguenot_n of_o france_n they_o be_v at_o age_n to_o answer_v he_o themselves_o our_o controversy_n be_v only_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n sect_n 6._o that_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n have_v sufficient_a ground_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v reason_n to_o wonder_v not_o at_o our_o ground_n but_o their_o silence_n that_o have_v so_o long_o so_o often_o call_v for_o our_o ground_n of_o separation_n and_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o ground_n now_o when_o sufficient_a ground_n be_v offer_v to_o they_o two_o of_o they_o one_o after_o another_o shall_v pass_v by_o they_o in_o deep_a silence_n and_o this_o dispatcher_n be_v call_v upon_o for_o a_o answer_n unless_o he_o will_v have_v the_o cause_n sentence_v against_o he_o upon_o a_o nihil_fw-la dicit_fw-la with_o more_o ha●●_n then_o good_a speed_n give_v we_o a_o answer_n and_o no_o answer_n like_o the_o title_n of_o a_o empty_a apothecary_n box._n if_o there_o be_v any_o monster_n the_o reader_n may_v look_v for_o it_o on_o that_o side_n not_o on_o our_o side_n he_o may_v promise_v the_o view_n of_o a_o strange_a monster_n in_o his_o antepast_n and_o postpast_n and_o blow_v his_o trumpet_n to_o get_v penny_n a_o piece_n to_o see_v it_o as_o he_o phrase_v it_o but_o if_o the_o reader_n expect_v till_o he_o show_v they_o any_o such_o rare_a sight_n they_o may_v wait_v until_o doom_n day_n and_o all_o the_o remedy_n he_o offer_v they_o be_v to_o say_v he_o have_v abuse_v they_o as_o he_o do_v often_o now_o room_n for_o his_o case_n or_o his_o two_o principle_n of_o unity_n which_o be_v evermore_o call_v in_o to_o help_v at_o a_o dead_a lift_n but_o his_o case_n be_v not_o the_o true_a case_n and_o his_o rule_n be_v leaden_a rule_n they_o may_v be_v straight_o at_o the_o beginning_n but_o they_o have_v bend_v they_o according_a to_o their self_o interest_n both_o his_o case_n and_o his_o principle_n have_v be_v sufficient_o discuss_v and_o full_o clear_v so_o that_o i_o will_v not_o offend_v the_o reader_n with_o his_o sleight_n dish_n of_o colewort_n sod_v over_o and_o over_o again_o he_o be_v angry_a that_o i_o make_v our_o separation_n to_o be_v rather_o from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n then_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o style_v it_o perfect_a impudence_n so_o my_o assertion_n be_v evident_o true_a i_o weigh_v not_o his_o groundless_a calumny_n let_v any_o man_n look_v upon_o our_o grievance_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o reformation_n 1._o the_o intolerable_a extortion_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n 2._o the_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n 3._o the_o malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n upon_o the_o body_n politic_a 4._o the_o like_a malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n upon_o the_o body_n ecclesiastic_a 5._o and_o last_o the_o violation_n of_o ancient_a liberty_n and_o exemtion_n by_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o he_o can_v not_o doubt_v from_o whence_o we_o make_v our_o separation_n all_o our_o suffering_n be_v from_o the_o roman_a court_n then_o why_o shall_v we_o seek_v for_o ease_v but_o where_o our_o shoe_n do_v wring_v we_o and_o as_o our_o grievance_n so_o our_o reformation_n be_v only_o of_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n their_o bestow_n of_o prelacy_n and_o dignity_n in_o england_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o right_a patron_n their_o convocate_a synod_n in_o england_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n their_o prohibit_v english_a prelate_n to_o make_v their_o old_a fe●dall_a oath_n to_o the_o king_n and_o oblige_v they_o to_o take_v new_a oath_n of_o fidelity_n to_o the_o pope_n their_o impose_v and_o receive_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o other_o arbitrary_a pension_n upon_o the_o english_a clergy_n and_o last_o their_o usurp_a a_o legislative_a judiciary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n by_o political_a coaction_n these_o be_v all_o the_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v reject_v this_o reformation_n be_v all_o the_o separation_n that_o we_o have_v make_v in_o point_n of_o discipline_n and_o for_o doctrine_n we_o have_v no_o difference_n with_o they_o about_o the_o old_a essentials_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o their_o new_a essentials_n which_o they_o have_v patch_v to_o the_o creed_n be_v but_o their_o erroneous_a or_o at_o the_o best_a probable_a opinion_n no_o article_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v still_o brag_v of_o his_o demonstration_n yet_o they_o be_v but_o blind_a enthymematicall_a paralogisme_n wherein_o he_o make_v sure_a to_o set_v his_o best_a leg_n foremost_a and_o to_o conceal_v the_o lameness_n of_o his_o discourse_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o reader_n and_o still_o call_v upon_o we_o for_o rigorous_a demonstration_n i_o wish_v we_o know_v whether_o he_o understand_v what_o rigorous_a demonstration_n be_v in_o logic_n for_o no_o other_o demonstration_n be_v rigorous_a but_o that_o which_o proceed_v according_a to_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o logic_n either_o a_o priore_fw-la or_o a_o posteriore_fw-la from_o the_o cause_n or_o the_o effect_n and_o this_o cause_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o whether_o those_o branch_n of_o power_n which_o the_o pope_n claim_v and_o we_o have_v
pass_v muster_n for_o once_o here_o be_v a_o contradiction_n deserve_v a_o bell_n and_o a_o babble_n catholic_n country_n do_v maintain_v their_o privilege_n inviolate_a by_o such_o mean_n at_o one_o time_n not_o at_o another_o in_o one_o place_v not_o in_o another_o in_o one_o degree_n not_o in_o another_o in_o one_o respect_v not_o in_o another_o the_o last_o mock_v contradiction_n be_v that_o i_o say_v the_o law_n which_o deny_v the_o pope_n all_o authority_n and_o be_v actual_o in_o force_n that_o be_v actual_o leave_v he_o none_o be_v not_o sufficient_a remedy_n against_o the_o abuse_n of_o that_o authority_n which_o have_v quite_o take_v they_o away_o this_o be_v not_o find_v of_o contradiction_n but_o make_v of_o they_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o use_v this_o id_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v and_o he_o will_v make_v a_o hundred_o contradiction_n in_o every_o page_n of_o the_o bible_n as_o here_o actual_o in_o force_n that_o be_v which_o actual_o leave_v the_o pope_n no_o authority_n or_o which_o have_v quite_o take_v his_o authority_n away_o if_o this_o id_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v be_v my_o than_o he_o may_v object_v the_o contradiction_n to_o i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o than_o he_o may_v keep_v the_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o such_o as_o it_o be_v he_o know_v and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o a_o law_n be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o in_o force_n while_o it_o be_v unrepealed_a in_o this_o sense_n i_o do_v and_o all_o man_n but_o himself_o do_v use_v that_o expression_n and_o here_o he_o commit_v a_o three_o gross_a fault_n against_o the_o rule_n of_o opposition_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v ever_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o same_o respect_n the_o law_n take_v away_o abuse_n as_o a_o rule_n but_o the_o magistrate_n by_o due_a execution_n as_o a_o artificer_n the_o law_n be_v sufficient_a when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o pen_v and_o promulge_v but_o the_o effect_n follow_v the_o due_a execution_n the_o not_o observe_v of_o this_o obvious_a and_o easy_a truth_n have_v make_v we_o all_o this_o stir_n about_o imaginary_a contradiction_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o last_o paragraph_n which_o alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o all_o these_o pretend_a contradiction_n but_o whether_o it_o will_v be_v so_o actual_o in_o force_n to_o procure_v his_o assent_n be_v more_o than_o i_o know_v if_o it_o do_v not_o it_o detract_v nothing_o frem_a the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o answer_n go_v mr._n serjeant_n go_v bring_v we_o less_o wind_n and_o more_o weight_n saepius_fw-la in_o libro_fw-la memor_fw-la atur_fw-la perseus_n uno_fw-la quam_fw-la levis_fw-la in_o totâ_fw-la tharsus_n amazonide_v in_o the_o last_o paragraph_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o calumny_n against_o henry_n the_o eight_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v and_o if_o he_o be_v it_o neither_o concern_v we_o nor_o the_o question_n sect_n vii_o that_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n proceed_v with_o due_a moderation_n this_o section_n do_v not_o much_o concern_v either_o we_o or_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n a_o reformation_n may_v be_v just_a and_o necessary_a although_o the_o reformer_n do_v exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o due_a moderation_n neither_o be_v we_o answerable_a for_o their_o excess_n further_o than_o we_o ourselves_o do_v maintain_v they_o i_o pass_v by_o his_o pleasant_a topick_n unsaluted_a as_o be_v impertinent_a and_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o deserve_v the_o least_o stay_n of_o a_o serious_a reader_n i_o reckon_v this_o as_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o our_o moderation_n that_o we_o deny_v not_o to_o other_o churhe_n the_o true_a be_v of_o church_n nor_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n nor_o separate_v from_o church_n but_o from_o accidental_a error_n for_o all_o his_o scoff_a if_o their_o church_n will_v use_v the_o like_a moderation_n it_o will_v save_v the_o world_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o needless_a debate_n against_o that_o which_o i_o say_v he_o object_v thus_o now_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n have_v evidence_v undeniable_o that_o they_o the_o protestant_n separate_v from_o those_o point_n which_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o unity_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o government_n he_o have_v bring_v his_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o his_o principle_n of_o unity_n so_o often_o upon_o the_o stage_n already_o and_o they_o have_v be_v so_o often_o clear_o answer_v that_o i_o will_v not_o insist_v upon_o such_o a_o threedbare_a subject_n or_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o irksome_a repetition_n we_o have_v see_v how_o far_o his_o principle_n of_o unity_n or_o his_o fundamental_a of_o fundamental_n be_v true_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v admit_v and_o in_o a_o right_a sense_n we_o adhere_v much_o more_o firm_o unto_o they_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o he_o procee_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n define_v that_o our_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n artic._n 19_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n be_v non_fw-la solum_fw-la quoad_fw-la agenda_fw-la &_o ceremoniarum_fw-la ritus_fw-la verum_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la credenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o be_v not_o only_o in_o practical_a observation_n and_o ceremonial_a rite_n but_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o use_v cardinal_n cajetans_n distinction_n not_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la formaliter_fw-la in_o necessary_a fundamental_a article_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v still_o retain_v the_o essentials_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v fidei_fw-la materialiter_fw-la in_o inferior_a question_n which_o happen_v in_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o say_v opinion_n wherein_o himself_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v that_o this_o be_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o article_n appear_v hence_o that_o the_o article_n do_v contradistinguish_v credenda_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v not_o to_o opinion_n but_o to_o agenda_fw-la thing_n to_o be_v practise_v he_o urge_v that_o we_o have_v declare_v four_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o be_v vain_a fiction_n contradictory_n to_o god_n word_n artic._n 22._o that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n indulgence_n their_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n right_o four_o point_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n enjoin_v by_o pius_n the_o four_o but_o no_o article_n of_o the_o old_a apostolical_a faith_n and_o at_o the_o best_a only_a opinion_n yet_o neither_o do_v he_o cite_v our_o article_n right_a which_o do_v not_o define_v they_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o only_o beside_o the_o scripture_n or_o not_o well_o ground_v upon_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n he_o add_v the_o like_a character_n be_v give_v of_o another_o point_n art_n 28._o that_o be_v transubstantiation_n our_o high_a act_n of_o devotion_n art_n 31._o be_v style_v a_o blasphemous_a fiction_n and_o pernicious_a imposture_n that_o be_v the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n concern_v transubstantiation_n what_o be_v our_o opinion_n i_o refer_v he_o to_o my_o answer_n to_o militier_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o it_o and_o concern_v their_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o the_o same_o answer_n pag._n 152._o edit_fw-la 2._o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o so_o clear_o understand_v at_o first_o on_o either_o side_n as_o it_o be_v now_o he_o can_v go_v one_o step_n further_o than_o we_o do_v in_o that_o cause_n without_o tumble_v into_o direct_a blasphemy_n it_o follow_v and_o art_n 33._o that_o those_o who_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n public_o shall_v be_v hold_v as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n well_o here_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n and_o franciscus_n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n in_o his_o paraphrastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o english_a article_n give_v this_o judgement_n of_o this_o article_n this_o article_n be_v catholic_n and_o agreeable_a as_o well_o to_o holy_a scripture_n as_o to_o antiquity_n then_o why_o do_v he_o snarl_v at_o this_o article_n which_o he_o can_v except_v against_o because_o he_o conceive_v that_o the_o article_n mean_v catholic_n or_o at_o least_o do_v include_v they_o judge_n reader_n what_o a_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n d●th_v possess_v this_o man_n who_o when_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o pick_v any_o quarrel_n at_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n calumniate_v the_o meaning_n upon_o his_o own_o groundless_a suspicion_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o preacher_n then_o to_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n idolatrous_a superstitious_a blasphemous_a and_o to_o make_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o forefather_n sin_n the_o bishop_n call_v here_o the_o two_o principle_n of_o
fantastic_a person_n who_o have_v be_v great_a pretender_n to_o demonstration_n but_o always_o successless_a and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n ridiculous_a they_o be_v so_o conceited_o curious_a about_o the_o premise_n that_o common_o they_o quite_o mistake_v their_o conclusion_n cause_n encumber_v with_o circumstance_n and_o those_o leave_v to_o the_o election_n of_o free_a agent_n be_v not_o very_o capable_a of_o demonstration_n the_o case_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o be_v this_o as_o it_o be_v state_v by_o i_o 306._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o obedience_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o upon_o those_o term_n it_o be_v undertake_v by_o he_o in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v and_o that_o this_o crime_n be_v just_o charge_v upon_o his_o church_n not_o only_o with_o colour_n but_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n of_o fact_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o position_n of_o the_o case_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o exception_n we_o have_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n agree_v upon_o between_o we_o now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v his_o intention_n what_o church_n soever_o do_v upon_o probable_a reason_n without_o any_o neeessary_a or_o convince_a ground_n break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o by_o all_o true_a church_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight●s_a day_n do_v upon_o probable_a reason_n without_o any_o necessary_a or_o convince_a ground_n break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o by_o all_o true_a church_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n i_o do_v ready_o assent_v to_o his_o major_a proposition_n and_o be_o ready_a to_o grant_v he_o more_o if_o he_o have_v please_v to_o insert_v it_o that_o that_o church_n be_v schismatical_a which_o do_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n whatsoever_o their_o reason_n be_v whether_o convince_a or_o probable_a and_o whosoever_o do_v either_o consent_n to_o they_o or_o dissent_v from_o they_o but_o i_o deny_v his_o minor_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v thus_o whatsoever_o church_n do_v renounce_v or_o reject_v these_o two_o follow_a rule_n or_o principle_n first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v inherit_v from_o their_o forefather_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v sole_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o obligatory_a and_o nothing_o in_o they_o to_o be_v change_v second_o that_o christ_n have_v make_v st._n peter_n first_o or_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o his_o apostle_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n under_o he_o in_o the_o church_n after_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o who_o all_o other_o in_o difficulty_n concern_v matter_n belong_v to_o universal_a faith_n or_o government_n shall_v have_v recourse_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n from_o st._n peter_n inherit_v from_o he_o this_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o church_n do_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v all_o this_o in_o henry_n the_o eyghts_n day_n that_o very_a year_n where_o in_o this_o unhappy_a separation_n begin_v upon_o mere_o probable_a no_o convince_a ground_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n to_o his_o former_a proposition_n i_o make_v this_o exception_n that_o he_o will_v obtrude_v upon_o we_o she_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o dependent_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o this_o he_o fly_v out_o as_o it_o be_v his_o custom_n into_o a_o invective_n discourse_n tell_v i_o i_o look_v a_o squint_a at_o his_o position_n of_o the_o case_n he_o will_v not_o find_v it_o so_o in_o the_o conclusion_n and_o that_o i_o strive_v hocuspocus_a like_o to_o divert_v my_o spectator_n eye_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o of_o such_o like_a froth_n where_o in_o there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n to_o the_o purpose_n except_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mention_v the_o word_n catholic_n in_o that_o place_n the_o great_a be_v his_o fault_n it_o be_v a_o foul_a solecism_n in_o logic_n not_o to_o conclude_v contradictory_o i_o do_v mention_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v separate_v itself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o he_o have_v undertake_v in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v to_o charge_v that_o very_a schism_n upon_o we_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o in_o his_o very_a first_o essay_n shuffle_n out_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o thrust_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o we_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n as_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o as_o above_o a_o five_o part_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o ascribe_v any_o such_o in_o fallibility_n in_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o all_o her_o dependent_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n nor_o esteem_v it_o always_o schismatical_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n namely_o in_o those_o point_n wherein_o she_o have_v first_o separate_v both_o from_o the_o primitive_a roman_a church_n and_o from_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n but_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v always_o schismatical_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unite_v thus_o much_o he_o ought_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o when_o he_o have_v oecasion_n hereafter_o to_o write_v upon_o this_o subject_a not_o to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v convertible_a term_n or_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n what_o their_o tenet_n be_v that_o these_o church_n which_o continue_v in_o communnion_n with_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n we_o regard_v not_o their_o schismatical_a and_o uncharitable_a tenet_n now_o no_o more_o than_o we_o regard_v the_o same_o tenet_n of_o the_o donatist_n of_o old_a they_o must_v produce_v better_a authority_n than_o their_o own_o and_o more_o substantial_a proof_n than_o he_o have_v any_o in_o his_o budget_n to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v charity_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n inclusive_o but_o the_o great_a uncharitableness_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v it_o the_o catholic_n church_n exclusive_o that_o be_v to_o separate_v from_o christ_n and_o from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v all_o christian_n who_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o communion_n howsoever_o it_o be_v well_o that_o they_o who_o use_v to_o vaunt_v that_o the_o enemy_n tremble_v at_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v now_o come_v about_o themselves_o to_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o roman_a take_v notice_n reader_n that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o time_n that_o mr._n serjeant_n turn_v his_o back_n to_o the_o question_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o last_o my_o next_o ta●ke_n be_v to_o examine_v his_o two_o rule_n or_o bond_n of_o unity_n faith_n and_o first_o concern_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n i_o do_v not_o only_o approve_v it_o but_o thank_v he_o for_o it_o and_o when_o i_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o confute_v the_o 12_o new_a article_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o i_o will_v not_o desire_v a_o better_a medium_n than_o it_o and_o i_o do_v cordial_o subscribe_v to_o his_o censure_n that_o the_o transgressor_n there_o of_o be_v indeed_o those_o who_o be_v true_o guilty_a of_o that_o horrid_a schism_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o his_o second_o rule_n or_o principle_n for_o government_n that_o christ_n make_v s●_n peter_z first_o or_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o his_o apostle_n peter_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n under_o he_o in_o the_o church_n after_o he_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o who_o all_o other_o shall_v have_v recourse_n in_o great_a difficulty_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o mere_a novice_n and_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o tenet_n of_o our_o english_a church_n he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o we_o have_v no_o controversy_n
well_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v a_o crooked_a line_n with_o a_o leaden_a rule_n particular_a tradition_n be_v flexible_a and_o be_v often_o bend_v according_a to_o the_o interest_n and_o inclination_n of_o particular_a age_n and_o place_n and_o person_n he_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o encroachment_n so_o as_o man_n adhere_v to_o this_o method_n that_o be_v immediate_a tradition_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o do_v adhere_v to_o this_o method_n and_o that_o there_o be_v such_o immediate_a tradition_n and_o yet_o we_o have_v see_v and_o feel_v that_o encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n do_v not_o only_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n but_o like_o a_o violent_a torrent_n do_v bear_v down_o all_o opposition_n before_o they_o i_o produce_v but_o two_o witness_n but_o they_o be_v beyond_o exception_n the_o one_o be_v pope_n adrian_n the_o six_o in_o his_o instruction_n to_o his_o nuncio_n franciscus_n cheregatus_fw-la when_o he_o send_v he_o to_o the_o german_a prince_n at_o the_o diet_n of_o nuremberg_n 29._o we_o know_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a see_v for_o some_o year_n past_a many_o thing_n have_v be_v to_o be_v abhominate_v abuse_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n excess_n in_o mandate_n and_o all_o thing_n change_v perverse_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v marveil_v at_o if_o sickness_n descend_v from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o member_n from_o the_o chief_a bishop_n to_o other_o inferior_a prelate_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o wherein_o for_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v we_o you_o shall_v promise_v that_o we_o will_v do_v our_o uttermost_a endeavour_n that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n this_o court_n from_o whence_o peradventure_o this_o evil_n have_v proceed_v may_v be_v reform_v that_o as_o the_o corruption_n flow_v from_o thence_o to_o all_o inferior_n so_o likewise_o the_o health_n and_o reformation_n of_o all_o may_v proceed_v from_o thence_o pope_n adrian_n confess_v abominable_a abuse_n and_o excess_n and_o perverse_a mutation_n and_o corruption_n and_o yet_o mr._n serjeant_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o where_o this_o method_n of_o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n be_v use_v there_o can_v be_v no_o change_n either_o this_o method_n be_v not_o use_v or_o this_o method_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a preservative_n against_o innovation_n both_o way_n his_o demonstration_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n my_o other_o witness_n be_v the_o council_n of_o nine_o chief_a cardinal_n who_o upon_o their_o oath_n deliver_v up_o as_o their_o veredict_v a_o bundle_n of_o abuse_n grievons_fw-fr abuse_n abuse_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v 140._o they_o be_v their_o own_o word_n you_o a_o monster_n to_o paul_n the_o three_o in_o the_o year_n 1538_o beseech_v he_o that_o these_o spot_n may_v be_v take_v away_o which_o if_o they_o be_v admit_v in_o any_o kingdom_n or_o republic_n will_v straight_o bring_v it_o to_o ruin_v never_o any_o man_n do_v make_v encroachment_n and_o innovatious_a to_o be_v impossible_a before_o this_o man_n his_o assumption_n be_v as_o false_a as_o his_o major_a proposition_n papacy_n but_o these_o two_o rule_n whereof_o this_o be_v one_o part_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n do_v inherit_v from_o he_o this_o privilege_n to_o be_v the_o first_o or_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n be_v agree_v upon_o unanimous_o between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o dependent_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o they_o all_o by_o the_o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o a_o world_n of_o father_n to_o a_o world_n of_o child_n successive_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o discipline_n receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a it_o concern_v we_o nothing_o we_o may_v perhaps_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o judgement_n but_o have_v no_o form_a quarrel_n with_o they_o about_o this_o that_o i_o know_v of_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o submit_v not_o only_o to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n b●t_v to_o the_o just_a ordinance_n of_o man_n and_o to_o yield_v for_o the_o common_a peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o christendom_n rather_o more_o than_o be_v due_a then_o less_o but_o otherwise_o how_o be_v that_o unanimous_o agree_v upon_o between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o england_n and_o so_o deliver_v by_o father_n to_o child_n as_o a_o thing_n accord_v whereof_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o better_o accord_v within_o itself_o unto_o this_o day_n i_o mean_v concern_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o st._n peter_n when_o the_o pope_n great_a champion_n maintain_v it_o so_o cold_o as_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o improbable_a that_o peradventure_o may_v be_v peradventure_o may_v not_o be_v as_o ground_v upon_o a_o fact_n of_o st._n peter_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v not_o upon_o the_o mandate_n of_o christ_n and_o though_o we_o shall_v be_v so_o kind-hearted_a as_o to_o suppose_v that_o there_o be_v some_o part_n of_o papal_a power_n in_o the_o abstract_n not_o in_o the_o concrete_a which_o be_v of_o christ_n own_o institution_n namely_o the_o beginning_n of_o unity_n that_o be_v a_o power_n to_o convocate_v the_o church_n and_o to_o preside_v in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n so_o far_o and_o no_o further_o than_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a do_v extend_v although_o there_o be_v no_o special_a mandate_n of_o christ_n to_o that_o purpose_n for_o one_o to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n or_o any_o prime_a or_o chief_a of_o all_o other_o bishop_n yet_o in_o the_o judgement_n even_o of_o the_o great_a opposer_n of_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n it_o be_v the_o dictate_v of_o nature_n that_o one_o shall_v preside_v over_o the_o rest_n 153._o exit_fw-la dei_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la perpetua_fw-la necesse_fw-la fuit_fw-la est_fw-la &_o erit_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o presbyterio_n quispiam_fw-la &_o loco_fw-la &_o dignitate_fw-la primus_fw-la actioni_fw-la gubernandae_fw-la praesit_fw-la yet_o what_o be_v this_o to_o that_o great_a bulk_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o have_v be_v confer_v upon_o that_o see_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o ecumenical_a counsel_n and_o by_o the_o civil_a sanction_n of_o christian_a emperor_n which_o be_v humane_a institution_n may_v be_v change_v by_o humane_a authority_n can_v one_o scruple_n of_o divine_a right_n convert_v a_o whole_a mass_n of_o humane_a right_n into_o divine_a we_o see_v papal_a power_n be_v not_o equal_a or_o alike_o in_o all_o place_n but_o be_v extend_v or_o contract_v various_o according_a to_o the_o different_a privilege_n and_o liberty_n of_o several_a church_n and_o kingdom_n we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n have_v very_o little_a to_o do_v in_o sicily_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n by_o reason_n that_o one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n long_o since_o have_v alienate_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o whole_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n of_o the_o country_n and_o to_o his_o heir_n we_o may_v call_v it_o by_o deputation_n or_o delegation_n but_o this_o be_v plain_a it_o be_v to_o he_o and_o his_o he●res_n for_o ever_o this_o be_v certain_a divine_a right_n can_v be_v extend_v or_o contract_v there_o be_v no_o privilege_n or_o prescription_n against_o divine_a right_n that_o which_o belong_v to_o one_o person_n by_o divine_a right_n can_v be_v alienate_v to_o another_o person_n by_o humane_a right_n for_o then_o humane_a right_n shall_v be_v strong_a than_o divine_a right_n in_o sum_n although_o there_o be_v some_o colour_n or_o pretext_n of_o divine_a right_n for_o a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n wheresoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n shall_v fix_v it_o yet_o it_o appear_v evident_o by_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o all_o age_n that_o there_o be_v no_o colour_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o a_o shadow_n of_o divine_a right_n for_o all_o the_o other_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n and_o those_o vast_a privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n they_o damn_v most_o of_o the_o article_n of_o john_n wickliff_n down_o right_o without_o hesitation_n 8._o but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o one_o and_o forty_o article_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v supreme_a among_o other_o church_n they_o pause_v and_o use_v some_o reservation_n it_o be_v a_o error_n if_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o understand_v the_o universal_a chureh_n or_o a_o general_n council_n or_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o shall_v deny_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n above_o other_o particular_a church_n their_o judgement_n be_v clear_a enough_o they_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n primatum_fw-la not_o suprematum_fw-la a_o primacy_n of_o
four_o custom_n be_v this_o that_o when_o a_o arch_a bishopric_n bishopric_n abbacy_n or_o priory_n do_v fall_v void_a the_o election_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o such_o of_o the_o principal_a dignitarye_n or_o member_n of_o that_o respective_a church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fill_v as_o the_o king_n shall_v call_v together_o for_o that_o purpose_n with_o the_o king_n consent_n in_o the_o king_n own_o chapel_n and_o there_o the_o person_n elect_v be_v to_o do_v his_o homage_n and_o fealty_n to_o the_o king_n as_o to_o his_o liege_n lord_n the_o pope_n have_v no_o part_n to_o act_n neither_o to_o collate_n nor_o consent_n nor_o confirm_v nor_o institute_n nor_o induct_n nor_o ordain_v the_o second_o law_n be_v the_o statute_n of_o carlisle_n make_v in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o first_o king_n the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o founder_n of_o all_o bishopric_n and_o aught_o to_o have_v the_o custody_n of_o they_o in_o the_o vacancye_n and_o the_o right_n of_o patronage_n to_o present_v to_o they_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n usurp_v the_o right_n of_o patronage_n give_v they_o to_o alien_n that_o this_o tend_v to_o the_o annullation_n of_o the_o state_n of_o holy_a church_n to_o the_o disinherit_n of_o king_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o they_o ordain_v in_o full_a parliament_n that_o this_o be_v a_o oppression_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o a_o entroachment_n or_o usurpation_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v the_o three_o law_n be_v make_v in_o the_o 15_o year_n of_o edward_n the_o three_o call_v the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o election_n be_v first_o grant_v by_o the_o king_n progenitor_n upon_o a_o certain_a form_n or_o condition_n to_o demand_v licenfe_fw-mi of_o the_o king_n to_o choose_v and_o after_o the_o election_n to_o have_v his_o royal_a assent_n which_o condition_n not_o be_v keep_v the_o thing_n ought_v by_o reason_n to_o resort_v to_o his_o first_o nature_n and_o there_o fore_o conclude_v that_o in_o case_n reservation_n collation_n or_o provision_n be_v make_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n of_o any_o arch_a bishopric_n etc._n etc._n our_o sovereign_a lord_n the_o king_n and_o his_o heir_n shall_v have_v and_o enjoy_v the_o collation_n for_o the_o same_o time_n to_o the_o say_v arch_a bishopric_n bishopric_n and_o other_o dignity_n elective_a which_o be_v of_o his_o aavowre_n such_o as_o his_o progenitor_n have_v before_o the_o free_a election_n be_v grant_v they_o tell_v the_o king_n plain_o that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v such_o that_o the_o king_n be_v bind_v to_o make_v remedye_n and_o law_n against_o such_o mischief_n and_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v advowée_a paramont_n immediate_a of_o all_o church_n prebend_n and_o other_o benefice_n which_o be_v of_o the_o advowry_n of_o holy_a church_n that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o sovereign_a patron_n of_o the_o church_n where_o no_o election_n can_v be_v make_v without_o the_o king_n congé_fw-fr d'_fw-fr estire_n or_o leave_v antecedent_n nor_o stand_v good_a without_o his_o subsequent_a consent_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o the_o crown_n do_v collate_n i_o come_v next_o to_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o first_o question_n king_n about_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n who_o have_v power_n to_o convocate_v and_o dissolve_v ecclesiastical_a assembly_n and_o whether_o the_o crown_n or_o the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v one_o upon_o another_o in_o this_o particular_a i_o can_v tell_v whether_o henry_n the_o eight_o or_o paul_n the_o three_o do_v mistake_v more_o about_o that_o airy_a title_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n henry_n the_o eight_o suppose_v that_o the_o right_a to_o convocate_v and_o dissolve_v ecclesiastical_a assembly_n and_o to_o receive_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n do_v essential_o follow_v this_o title_n and_o paul_n the_o three_o declaringe_v it_o to_o be_v heretical_a and_o schismatical_a to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n be_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o our_o law_n and_o history_n ancient_a and_o modern_a do_v every_o where_o ascribe_v to_o our_o english_a king_n to_o be_v governor_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v the_o advocate_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v patron_n and_o advowée_n paramont_n of_o all_o church_n to_o be_v defender_n of_o the_o fa●h_v there_o profess_v and_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o convocation_n itself_o ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n protectores_fw-la singulares_fw-la vnicos_fw-la &_o supremos_n dominos_fw-la the_o same_o body_n may_v have_v several_a head_n of_o several_a kind_n upon_o earth_n as_o political_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o than_o that_o which_o take_v care_n of_o the_o archirectonicall_a end_n to_o see_v that_o every_o member_n do_v his_o duty_n be_v always_o supreme_a that_o be_v the_o political_a head_n this_o truth_n cardinal_n poole_n do_v see_v clear_o enough_o and_o reconcile_v the_o seem_a difference_n by_o distinguish_v between_o a_o regal_a head_n and_o a_o sacerdotal_a head_n this_o truth_n the_o french_a divine_n see_v well_o enough_o 70._o and_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v their_o king_n the_o terrene_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o realm_n without_o attribute_v to_o he_o any_o sacerdotal_a right_n we_o have_v our_o sacerdotal_a head_n too_o in_o england_n without_o seek_v for_o they_o so_o far_o as_o rome_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o the_o reign_v of_o our_o english_a monarch_n who_o of_o old_a be_v nullius_fw-la unquam_fw-la legati_fw-la ditioni_fw-la subjectus_fw-la never_o subject_a to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o any_o legate_n when_o the_o pope_n send_v over_o guy_n archbishop_n of_o vienna_n into_o england_n as_o his_o legate_n throughout_o britain_n for_o the_o apostolical_a see_v it_o be_v receive_v with_o wonder_n and_o admiration_n of_o all_o man_n 58._o inauditum_fw-la scilicet_fw-la in_o britannia_fw-la cuncti_fw-la scientes_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la hominum_fw-la super_fw-la se_fw-la vice_n apostolicas_fw-la gerere_fw-la nisi_fw-la solum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la cantuariae_fw-la all_o man_n do_v know_v that_o it_o be_v never_o hear_v in_o britagne_n that_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o have_v apostolical_a power_n over_o they_o but_o only_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o according_o the_o new_a legate_n do_v speed_n so_o it_o follow_v wherefore_o as_o he_o come_v so_o he_o return_v receive_v as_o legate_n by_o no_o man_n nor_o have_v exercise_v any_o part_n of_o his_o legantine_n power_n 120._o this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o letter_n of_o the_o english_a bishop_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o church_n of_o canterbury_n may_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o its_o dignity_n in_o his_o time_n and_o that_o he_o will_v neither_o diminish_v it_o himself_o nor_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v diminish_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o pope_n acknowledgement_n in_o his_o answer_n but_o to_o come_v up_o close_o to_o the_o difference_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o ●he_v bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n to_o call_v synod_n he_o be_v a_o bishop_n a_o metropolitan_a a_o patriarch_n a_o prince_n in_o his_o own_o dominion_n as_o a_o bishop_n he_o may_v convocate_v his_o diocese_n as_o a_o metropolitan_a his_o province_n as_o a_o patriarch_n his_o patriarchate_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n more_o or_o less_o compulsory_a according_a to_o that_o degree_n of_o coactive_a power_n which_o have_v be_v indulge_v to_o he_o in_o these_o distinct_a capacity_n by_o former_a sovereign_n and_o as_o a_o prince_n he_o may_v convocate_v his_o subject_n under_o political_a pain_n the_o more_o these_o two_o power_n be_v unite_v and_o complicate_v the_o more_o terrible_a be_v the_o censure_n and_o therefore_o our_o king_n will_v have_v their_o bishop_n denounce_v spiritual_a pain_n also_o against_o the_o violator_n of_o their_o great_a charter_n spiritual_a paive_n be_v more_o heavy_a than_o political_a but_o political_a most_o common_o be_v more_o speedy_a than_o spiritual_a and_o more_o certain_a spiritual_a pain_n do_v not_o follow_v a_o err_a key_n but_o political_a do_v neither_o will_v i_o dispute_v at_o present_a whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o his_o repute_a primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n may_v lawful_o call_v a_o ecumenical_a or_o occidental_a council_n by_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a which_o consist_v rather_o in_o advise_v then_o in_o mandate_n proper_o so_o call_v or_o in_o mandate_n of_o courtesy_n not_o coactive_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v the_o division_n and_o subdivision_n of_o the_o ancient_a empire_n and_o the_o present_a distraction_n of_o christendom_n it_o seem_v not_o altogether_o in_o convenient_a we_o see_v the_o primitive_a father_n do_v assemble_v synod_n and_o ●ake_z canon_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n emperor_n but_o that_o be_v by_o aurhority_n mere_o spiritual_a they_o
matrimony_n of_o cloysterer_n from_o their_o vow_n of_o celibate_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n from_o all_o obligation_n civil_a or_o sacred_a and_o whereas_o no_o dispensation_n ought_v to_o be_v grant_v without_o just_a cause_n now_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n at_o all_o inquire_v after_o in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o the_o price_n 6._o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o nine_o choice_n cardinal_n lay_v so_o close_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o paul_n the_o three_o how_o sacred_a and_o venerable_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v how_o unlawful_a and_o pernicious_a it_o be_v to_o reap_v any_o gain_n from_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o key_n they_o inveigh_v sad_o throughout_o against_o dispensation_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o simoniacal_a person_n be_v not_o afraid_a at_o rome_n first_o to_o commit_v simony_n and_o present_o to_o go_v buy_v a_o absolution_n and_o so_o retain_v their_o benefice_n bina_n venena_fw-la juvant_n two_o gross_a simony_n make_v a_o title_n at_o rome_n thank_n to_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n but_o i_o must_v contract_v my_o discourse_n to_o those_o dispensation_n which_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o that_o be_v the_o power_n to_o dispense_v with_o english_a law_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n let_v he_o bindor_n loose_v inward_o who_o he_o will_v whether_o his_o key_n err_v or_o not_o we_o be_v not_o concern_v second_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n in_o his_o own_o territory_n he_o that_o have_v power_n to_o bind_v have_v power_n to_o loose_v he_o that_o have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o his_o own_o law_n law_n be_v make_v of_o common_a event_n those_o benign_a circumstance_n which_o happen_v rare_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o dispensative_a grace_n of_o the_o prince_n three_o as_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n whatsoever_o dispensative_a power_n the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n or_o edict_n of_o christian_a emperor_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n within_o those_o territory_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o jurisdiction_n by_o humane_a right_n we_o do_v not_o envy_v he_o so_o he_o suffer_v we_o to_o enjoy_v our_o ancient_a privilege_n and_o immunity_n free_v from_o his_o encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n the_o chief_a ground_n of_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n be_v let_v the_o old_a custom_n prevail_v a_o possession_n or_o prescription_n of_o eleven_o h●ndred_o year_n be_v a_o good_a ward_n both_o in_o law_n and_o conscience_n against_o humane_a right_n and_o much_o more_o against_o a_o new_a pretence_n of_o divine_a right_n for_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n our_o king_n and_o bishop_n enjoy_v the_o ●ole_a dispensative_a power_n with_o all_o english_a law_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a in_o all_o which_o time_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v one_o instance_n of_o a_o papal_a dispensation_n in_o england_n nor_o any_o shadow_n of_o it_o when_o the_o church_n be_v form_v where_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o legislative_a power_n no_o judiciary_n power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n by_o necessary_a consequence_n they_o can_v have_v no_o dispensative_a power_n the_o first_o reservation_n of_o any_o case_n in_o england_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o absolution_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v that_o of_o albericus_n the_o pope_n legate_n in_o a_o english_a synod_n in_o the_o year_n 1138._o neque_fw-la quisquam_fw-la ei_fw-la praeter_fw-la romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la nisi_fw-la mortis_fw-la urgente_fw-la periculo_fw-la modum_fw-la paenitenttae_fw-la finalis_fw-la injungat_fw-la let_v no_o man_n enjoin_v he_o the_o manner_n of_o final_a penance_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n except_o in_o danger_n of_o death_n but_o long_o before_o this_o indeed_o from_o the_o beginning_n 1648._o our_o own_o bishop_n as_o the_o most_o proper_a judge_n who_o live_v upon_o the_o place_n and_o see_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o crime_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o delinquent_n penitence_n or_o impenitence_n do_v according_a to_o equity_n relax_v the_o rigour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n as_o they_o do_v all_o over_o the_o christian_a world_n before_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v usurp_v this_o gainful_a monopoly_n of_o dispensation_n in_o the_o law_n of_o alured_n alone_o and_o in_o the_o conjoint_v law_n of_o alured_n and_o gu●thrun_n we_o see_v how_o many_o sort_n of_o ecclesiastical_a crime_n be_v dispense_v withal_o by_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n and_o satisfaction_n make_v at_o home_n to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o party_n grieve_v or_o the_o poor_a without_o any_o manner_n of_o reference_n at_o all_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o any_o foreign_a dispensation_n etc._n the_o like_a we_o find_v in_o the_o the_o law_n of_o some_o other_o saxon_a king_n there_o need_v no_o other_o paenitentiary_n tax_v dunstan_n the_o archbishop_n have_v excommunicate_v a_o great_a count_n he_o make_v his_o peace_n at_o rome_n and_o obtain_v the_o pope_n command_v for_o his_o restitution_n to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n dunstan_n answer_v i_o will_v obey_v the_o pope_n willing_o when_o i_o see_v he_o penitent_a but_o it_o be_v not_o god_n will_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v in_o his_o sin_n free_a from_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n to_o insult_v over_o we_o god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v relinquish_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o any_o mortal_a man_n 481._o roman_n dispensation_n be_v not_o in_o such_o request_n in_o those_o day_n the_o church_n of_o england_n dispense_v with_o those_o nun_n who_o have_v flee_v to_o their_o nunnery_n not_o for_o the_o love_n of_o religion_n 32._o but_o have_v take_v the_o veil_n upon_o they_o mere_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o french_a and_o this_o with_o the_o counseile_n of_o the_o king_n in_o the_o day_n of_o lanfranke_n and_o with_o queen_n maud_n the_o wife_n of_o henry_n the_o first_o in_o the_o like_a case_n 57_o in_o the_o day_n of_o anselm_n without_o any_o suit_n to_o rome_n for_o a_o foreign_a dispensation_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o more_o pernicious_a than_o where_o the_o sacred_a name_n of_o law_n be_v prostitute_v to_o avaricious_a end_n where_o statute_n or_o canon_n be_v make_v like_o pitfall_n or_o trap_n to_o catch_v the_o subject_n by_o their_o purse_n where_o profitable_a fault_n be_v cherish_v for_o private_a advantage_n by_o mercenary_a judge_n as_o beggar_n do_v their_o sore_n the_o roman_a rota_n do_v acknowledge_v such_o ordinary_a avaricious_a dispensation_n to_o be_v odious_a thing_n the_o delected_n cardinal_n make_v they_o to_o be_v sacrilegious_a thing_n a_o unlawful_a sell_v of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n common_o they_o be_v call_v vulnera_fw-la legum_n the_o wound_n of_o the_o law_n 3_o and_o our_o statute_n of_o proviser_n do_v style_v they_o express_o the_o undo_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o common_a law_n of_o the_o land_n the_o king_n the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o the_o whole_a common_a wealth_n of_o england_n complain_v of_o this_o abuse_n as_o a_o mighty_a grievance_n of_o the_o frequent_a come_n among_o they_o of_o this_o infamous_a messenger_n the_o pope_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la 1245._o that_o be_v his_o dispensation_n by_o which_o oath_n custom_n write_n grant_n statute_n right_n privilege_n be_v not_o only_o weaken_v but_o exinanit_v sometime_o these_o dispensative_a bull_n come_v to_o legal_a trial_n and_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v visitor_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n boniface_n the_o eight_o by_o his_o bull_n dispense_v with_o this_o law_n and_o exempt_v the_o university_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o archbishop_n whereupon_o there_o grow_v a_o controversy_n and_o the_o bull_n be_v decree_v void_a in_o parliament_n by_o two_o succeed_v king_n 91._o as_o be_v obtain_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o crown_n the_o weaken_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o favour_n of_o lollard_n and_o heretic_n and_o the_o probable_a ruin_n of_o the_o say_a university_n how_o the_o liberty_n of_o france_n and_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o england_n do_v accord_n in_o condemn_v this_o usurpation_n we_o have_v see_v former_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o absolute_a in_o france_n but_o limit_v and_o restrain_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n if_o it_o be_v limit_v and_o restrain_v by_o ancient_a canon_n than_o it_o be_v not_o paramount_n above_o the_o canon_n than_o it_o be_v not_o dispensative_a to_o give_v non_fw-fr obstante_n to_o the_o canon_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n may_v not_o execute_v his_o commission_n before_o he_o have_v promise_v under_o his_o oath_n upon_o his_o holy_a order_n that_o he_o will_v not_o attempt_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o legantine_n power_n to_o
the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o general_n counsel_n or_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o french_a church_n then_o he_o must_v give_v no_o dispensarion_n against_o the_o canon_n or_o contrary_a to_o those_o privilege_n thus_o we_o have_v view_v all_o the_o real_a difference_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o concern_v papal_a power_n which_o our_o law_n take_v notice_n of_o there_o be_v some_o other_o pet●y_a abuse_n which_o we_o complain_v of_o but_o they_o may_v be_v all_o refer_v to_o one_o of_o these_o four_o head_n the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o legislative_a the_o judicary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n other_o difference_n be_v but_o the_o opinion_n of_o particular_a person_n but_o where_o no_o law_n be_v there_o be_v no_o transgression_n we_o have_v see_v evident_o that_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v cast_v no_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n out_o of_o england_n but_o that_o which_o be_v diametral_o repugnant_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o land_n make_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o richard_n the_o second_o edward_z the_o three_o edward_z the_o first_o henry_n the_o three_o henry_n the_o second_o and_o these_o law_n ever_o of_o force_n in_o england_n never_o repeal_v no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o queen_n maryes_fw-mi time_n when_o all_o the_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o eigh●h_o and_o edward_n the_o six_o which_o concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v repeal_v so_o that_o i_o profess_v clear_o i_o do_v not_o see_v what_o advantage_n henry_n the_o eight_o can_v make_v of_o his_o own_o law_n which_o he_o may_v not_o have_v make_v of_o those_o ancient_a law_n except_o only_o a_o gawdy_a title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n which_o survive_v he_o not_o long_a and_o the_o ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v so_o late_a a_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n when_o those_o ancient_a law_n be_v make_v and_o since_o i_o have_v mention_v the_o novelty_n of_o that_o upstart_n usurpation_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o let_v you_o see_v how_o it_o be_v welcome_v into_o england_n while_o it_o be_v but_o yet_o hatch_n with_o the_o shell_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o it_o by_o a_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o about_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o henry_n the_o eyghth_n so_o late_a this_o mushroom_n begin_v to_o sprout_v up_o 1._o for_o the_o grievous_a complaint_n make_v to_o the_o king_n by_o his_o commons_o in_o parliament_n of_o the_o horrible_a mischief_n and_o damnable_a custom_n which_o be_v introduce_v of_o new_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o none_o can_v have_v provision_n of_o a_o archbishopric_n until_o he_o have_v compound_v with_o the_o pope_n chamber_n to_o pay_v great_a excessive_a sum_n of_o money_n as_o well_o for_o the_o first_o fruit_n as_o other_o lesser_a fee_n and_o perquisites_n &c_n &c_n the_o king_n ordain_v in_o parliament_n as_o well_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n as_o to_o eschew_v the_o damage_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o peril_n of_o soul_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v pay_v such_o sum_n shall_v forfeit_v all_o they_o have_v or_o as_o much_o as_o they_o may_v forfeit_v wherein_o be_v henry_n the_o eight_o law_n more_o bitter_a against_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o more_o severe_a than_o this_o be_v to_o conclude_v we_o have_v see_v the_o precise_a time_n when_o all_o these_o weed_n do_v first_o begin_v to_o peep_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n the_o very_a first_o introduction_n to_o the_o intend_a pageant_n be_v the_o spoil_n of_o christian_a king_n of_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o they_o hold_v conc._n per_fw-la non_fw-la breve_fw-la tempus_fw-la for_o a_o long_a time_n a_o long_a time_n indeed_o so_o long_o as_o there_o have_v be_v christian_a prince_n in_o the_o world_n from_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_o henry_n the_o four_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o yet_o long_o with_o we_o in_o britain_n from_o king_n lucius_n to_o henry_n the_o first_o the_o clergy_n of_o liege_n say_v nimium_fw-la effluxit_fw-la tempus_fw-la quo_fw-la hae●_n consuetudo_fw-la incepit_fw-la &_o e._n it_o be_v too_o long_o since_o this_o custom_n of_o swear_v fidelity_n to_o prince_n do_v begin_v and_o under_o this_o custom_n holy_a and_o reverend_a bishop_n have_v yield_v up_o their_o soul_n to_o god_n give_v to_o caesar_n that_o which_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n that_o which_o be_v go_n but_o they_o rise_v up_o pope_n hildebrand_n otherwise_o call_v gregory_n the_o seven_o fortissimus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dei_fw-la vindex_n the_o most_o undaunted_a vindicator_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n bell._n who_o fear_v not_o to_o revoke_v and_o defend_v the_o old_a holy_a ecclesiastical_a law_n ibid._n with_o this_o accord_v the_o church_n of_o liege_n hildehran_n thus_fw-mi papa_n author_n huius_fw-la novelli_n schismatis_fw-la primus_fw-la levavit_fw-la sacerdotalem_fw-la lanceam_fw-la contra_fw-la diadema_fw-la regni_fw-la etc._n etc._n pope_n hildebrand_n the_o author_n of_o this_o new_a schism_n first_o lift_v up_o his_o episcopal_a lance_n against_o the_o royal_a diaden_a and_o a_o little_a after_o si_fw-mi utriusque_fw-la legis_fw-la totam_fw-la bibliothecam_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o turn_v over_o the_o whole_a library_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n and_o all_o the_o ancient_a expositor_n thereof_o i_o shall_v not_o find_v a_o example_n of_o this_o apostolical_a precept_n only_a pope_n hildebrand_n perfect_v the_o sacred_a canon_n when_o he_o command_v maud_n the_o marchionesse_n to_o subdue_v henry_n the_o emperor_n for_o remission_n of_o her_o sin_n i_o take_v no_o exception_n to_o the_o person_n of_o pope_n hildebrand_n other_o have_v do_v it_o sufficient_o whether_o the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n be_v fasten_v upon_o he_o just_o or_o injust_o i_o regard_v not_o 56._o yet_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o hildebrand_n and_o paschalis_n his_o successor_n that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o florence_n affirm_v by_o revelation_n for_o he_o protest_v that_o he_o know_v it_o most_o certain_o that_o antichrist_n be_v to_o be_v reveal_v in_o that_o age_n cant._n and_o about_o this_o time_n the_o waldenses_n of_o who_o st._n bernard_n say_v that_o if_o we_o inquire_v into_o their_o faith_n nothing_o be_v more_o christian_n if_o into_o their_o conversation_n nothing_o be_v more_o irreprehensible_a make_v their_o secession_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o long_o after_o in_o the_o year_n 1120._o publish_v a_o book_n to_o the_o world_n that_o the_o great_a antichrist_n be_v come_v that_o the_o present_a governor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n danielis_fw-la arm_v with_o both_o power_n secular_a and_o spiritual_a who_o under_o the_o specious_a name_n of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n do_v oppose_v the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n be_v antichrist_n but_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v what_o be_v those_o old_a holy_a ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o bellarmine_n mention_v 7._o those_o institution_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n which_o hildebrand_n himself_o profess_v to_o follow_v sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la instituta_fw-la sequen●es_fw-la why_o do_v they_o mention_v what_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v or_o pretend_v what_o they_o never_o can_v perform_v bellarmin_n have_v name_v but_o one_o poor_a counterfeit_a canon_n without_o antiquity_n without_o authority_n without_o use_n without_o truth_n if_o mr._n sergeant_n be_v able_a to_o help_v he_o with_o a_o recruit_v it_o will_v come_v very_o seasonable_o for_o without_o some_o such_o help_n his_o pretend_a institution_n of_o the_o father_n will_v be_v condemn_v for_o his_o own_o innovation_n and_o for_o arrant_a usurpation_n jurisdiction_n and_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n will_v fall_v upon_o the_o roman_a court._n sect._n i._n cap._n ix_o but_o i_o expect_v it_o shall_v be_v object_v that_o beside_o these_o statute_n which_o concern_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n the_o legislative_a the_o judiciary_n the_o dispensative_a power_n of_o pope_n 10._o there_o be_v two_o other_o statute_n make_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o 5._o the_o one_o a_o act_n for_o extinguish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o other_o a_o act_n for_o establish_v the_o king_n succession_n in_o the_o crown_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o oath_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n or_o authority_n in_o this_o realm_n and_o that_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o 37._o article_n of_o our_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o in_o the_o oath_n ordain_v by_o queen_n elisabeth_n that_o no_o foreign_a prelate_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n or_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a with_o in_o this_o realm_n i_o answer_v this_o objection_n three_o way_n first_o as_o to_o the_o two_o law_n
our_o church_n witness_v the_o profession_n of_o king_n james_n witness_v all_o our_o statute_n themselves_o wherein_o all_o the_o part_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v enumerate_v which_o be_v take_v away_o his_o entroachment_n his_o usurpation_n his_o oath_n his_o collation_n provision_n pension_n ten_o first_o fruit_n reservation_n pall_v union_n commendam_n exemption_n dispensation_n of_o all_o kind_n confirmation_n licenses_fw-la faculty_n suspension_n appeal_v and_o god_n know_v how_o many_o pecuniary_a artifices_fw-la more_fw-it but_o of_o they_o all_o there_o be_v not_o one_o that_o concern_v jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a or_o which_o be_v a_o essential_a right_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n they_o be_v all_o branch_n of_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o usurp_v from_o the_o crown_n sundry_a of_o they_o from_o bishop_n and_o some_o find_v out_o by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o as_o the_o payment_n for_o pall_v which_o be_v nothing_o in_o s._n gregorye_n time_n but_o a_o free_a gift_n or_o liberality_n or_o bounty_n free_a from_o imposition_n and_o exaction_n last_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o our_o grievance_n express_v frequent_o in_o our_o law_n and_o in_o other_o writer_n the_o disinherit_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o peer_n the_o destruction_n and_o anullation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a the_o vexation_n of_o the_o king_n liege_n people_n the_o impoverish_n of_o the_o subject_n the_o drain_n the_o kingdom_n of_o its_o treasure_n the_o decay_n of_o hospitality_n the_o disservice_n of_o god_n and_o fill_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o foreigner_n the_o exclude_v temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o spoil_v and_o ravine_v gross_a simoniacal_a contract_n sacrilege_n grievous_a and_o intolerable_a oppression_n and_o extortion_n jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a do_v neither_o disinherit_v the_o prince_n nor_o the_o peer_n nor_o destroy_v and_o annul_v the_o law_n and_o prerogative_n royal_a nor_o vex_v the_o king_n liege_n people_n nor_o impoverish_v the_o subject_a nor_o drain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o its_o treasure_n nor_o fill_v the_o church_n with_o foreigner_n nor_o exclude_v temporal_a king_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n nor_o subject_v the_o realm_n to_o spoil_v and_o ravine_v authority_n pure_o spiritual_a be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o decay_n of_o hospitality_n or_o disservice_n of_o almighty_a god_n or_o simony_n or_o sacrilege_n or_o oppression_n and_o extortion_n no_o no_o it_o be_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o new_a roman_a law_n and_o mandate_n by_o new_a roman_a sentence_n and_o judgement_n by_o new_a roman_a pardon_n and_o dispensation_n by_o new_a roman_a synod_n and_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n by_o new_a roman_a bishop_n and_o clerk_n it_o be_v your_o new_a roman_a ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o provision_n and_o reservation_n and_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o horrible_a mischief_n and_o damnable_a custom_n that_o be_v apparent_o guilty_a of_o all_o these_o evil_n these_o papal_a innovation_n we_o have_v take_v away_o indeed_o and_o deserve_o have_v show_v the_o express_a time_n and_o place_n and_o person_n when_o and_o where_o and_o by_o who_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v first_o introduce_v into_o england_n and_o we_o have_v restore_v to_o every_o bird_n his_o own_o feather_n to_o the_o king_n his_o political_a supremacy_n to_o the_o peer_n their_o patronage_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v due_a to_o they_o either_o by_o divine_a right_n or_o humane_a right_n more_o than_o these_o innovation_n we_o have_v take_v nothing_o away_o that_o i_o know_v of_o or_o rather_o it_o be_v not_o we_o nor_o henry_n the_o eight_o who_o do_v take_v these_o innovation_n away_o but_o our_o ancestor_n by_o their_o law_n three_o four_o five_o hundred_o year_n old_a so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o sprout_v out_o or_o indeed_o before_o they_o be_v well_o form_v as_o their_o statute_n yet_o extant_a do_v evidence_n to_o the_o world_n but_o that_o filth_n which_o they_o sweep_v out_o at_o the_o before_o door_n the_o roman_a emissarye_n bring_v in_o again_o at_o the_o back_n door_n all_o our_o part_n or_o share_v of_o this_o work_n be_v to_o confirm_v what_o our_o ancestor_n have_v do_v i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o may_v not_o conclude_v my_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_a mutatis_fw-la mutandis_fw-la with_o as_o much_o confidence_n as_o sanders_n do_v his_o visible_a monarchy_n quisquis_fw-la jurabit_fw-la per_fw-la viventem_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o schismatical_a in_o respect_n of_o any_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o she_o have_v cast_v out_o at_o the_o reformation_n he_o shall_v not_o forswear_v himself_o but_o wager_n and_o oath_n and_o protestation_n be_v common_o the_o argument_n of_o such_o as_o have_v get_v the_o wrong_a end_n of_o the_o staff_n i_o will_v shut_v up_o this_o long_a discourse_n concern_v henry_n the_o eighths_n reformation_n with_o a_o short_a apostrophe_n to_o my_o countryman_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o england_n they_o have_v be_v ta●ght_v that_o it_o be_v we_o who_o apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o it_o be_v we_o who_o renounce_v the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n whereas_o it_o be_v we_o who_o maintain_v ancient_a apostolical_a tradition_n against_o their_o upstart_n innovation_n whereas_o it_o be_v we_o who_o do_v propugne_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o ancestor_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n if_o our_o ancestor_n be_v catholic_n in_o this_o cause_n we_o can_v be_v schismatical_a let_v they_o take_v heed_n lest_o whilst_o they_o fly_v o●t_v of_o a_o panicall_a fear_n from_o a_o suppose_a schism_n they_o do_v not_o plunge_v themselves_o over_o head_n and_o ear_n into_o real_a schism_n let_v they_o choose_v whether_o they_o will_v join_v with_o their_o ancestor_n in_o this_o cause_n 4._o or_o with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o with_o both_o they_o can_v join_v if_o true_a english_a blood_n run_v in_o their_o vein_n they_o can_v be_v long_o deliberate_v about_o that_o which_o their_o ancestor_n even_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n vote_v unanimous_o that_o they_o will_v stand_v by_o their_o king_n and_o maintain_v the_o right_n of_o his_o imperial_a crown_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n i_o have_v represent_v clear_o to_o you_o the_o true_a controversy_n betweme_v the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n concern_v papal_a power_n not_o as_o it_o be_v state_v by_o private_a writer_n but_o in_o our_o english_a law_n a_o glass_n that_o can_v deceive_v we_o for_o so_o far_o as_o to_o let_v we_o see_v the_o right_a difference_n let_v they_o quit_v these_o gross_a usurpation_n why_o shall_v they_o be_v more_o ashamed_a to_o restore_v our_o lust_n right_n than_o they_o be_v to_o plunder_v we_o of_o they_o let_v they_o distinguish_v between_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a and_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n which_o for_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v political_a between_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v long_v to_o the_o civil_a sovereign_n and_o not_o to_o the_o church_n further_o than_o he_o have_v be_v gracious_o please_v to_o communicate_v it_o between_o that_o obedience_n with_o procee_v from_o fear_n of_o wrath_n or_o from_o fear_n of_o god_n revenger_n to_o execute_v wrath_n that_o be_v the_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o that_o obedience_n which_o proceed_v mere_o from_o conscience_n 13._o and_o then_o there_o be_v hope_n we_o may_v come_v to_o understand_v one_o another_o better_a it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v other_o difference_n between_o we_o but_o this_o be_v the_o main_a difference_n which_o give_v denomination_n to_o the_o party_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o press_v those_o difference_n they_o may_v come_v to_o have_v such_o another_o account_n as_o they_o have_v now_o the_o wide_a the_o hole_n grow_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o millstone_n man_n see_v clear_a through_o it_o dies_fw-la diei_fw-la eructat_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indica●_n scientiam_fw-la the_o latter_a day_n be_v the_o scholar_n of_o the_o former_a sect._n i._n cap._n x._o by_o this_o time_n we_o see_v that_o mr._n sergeant_n great_a dispatch_n will_v prove_v but_o a_o sleeveless_a errand_n unity_n and_o that_o his_o first_o movership_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o think_v shall_v have_v bear_v down_o all_o before_o it_o be_v a_o unsignificant_a expression_n and_o altogether_o impertinent_a to_o the_o true_a controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o unless_o as_o dido_n do_v encompass_v the_o
advance_v the_o papacy_n above_o the_o representative_a church_n be_v no_o worse_a than_o their_o virtual_a church_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o adherent_n they_o who_o have_v the_o key_n in_o their_o hand_n such_o a_o party_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o say_v his_o soul_n be_v his_o own_o against_o they_o nor_o maintain_v the_o contrary_a that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n he_o urge_v that_o i_o ascribe_v no_o more_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o first_o movership_n movership_n but_o only_a authority_n to_o sit_v first_o in_o council_n or_o some_o such_o thing_n i_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o pope_n all_o that_o power_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o either_o by_o divine_a right_n or_o humane_a right_n at_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o meet_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n and_o for_o s._n peter_n why_o do_v he_o not_o leave_v his_o word_v of_o it_o in_o general_n and_o fall_v to_o work_v with_o argument_n in_o particular_a if_o he_o have_v any_o we_o offer_v he_o a_o fair_a trial_n for_o it_o that_o s._n peter_n never_o enjoy_v or_o exercise_v any_o great_a or_o high_a power_n in_o the_o church_n than_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v either_o extensive_o or_o intensive_o either_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o the_o apostolical_a college_n except_o only_o that_o primordium_fw-la vnitatis_fw-la or_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o he_o scoff_v at_o every_o where_o yet_o neither_o do_v we_o make_v his_o first_o movership_n void_a of_o all_o activity_n and_o influence_n as_o he_o accuse_v we_o first_o we_o know_v he_o have_v apostolical_a power_n which_o be_v the_o high_a spiritual_a power_n upon_o earth_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o second_o some_o power_n do_v belong_v to_o a_o first_o mover_n even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n beside_o the_o first_o seat_n as_o to_o convocate_v the_o member_n to_o preserve_v order_n to_o propose_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v discuss_v to_o receive_v the_o vote_n to_o give_v the_o sentence_n and_o to_o see_v it_o execute_v so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v trust_v by_o the_o body_n what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n believe_v 497_o of_o the_o pope_n inherit_v st._n peter_n privilege_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o power_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o how_o the_o breach_n be_v make_v and_o when_o i_o have_v show_v abundant_o already_o we_o have_v see_v his_o rare_a skill_n in_o the_o discovery_n of_o a_o falsification_n or_o a_o contradiction_n now_o let_v we_o see_v if_o his_o scent_n be_v as_o good_a to_o find_v out_o a_o absurdity_n he_o make_v i_o argue_v thus_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n because_o he_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n and_o much_o more_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v totum_fw-la est_fw-la minus_fw-la parte_fw-la and_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v less_o and_o then_o he_o crow_n out_o his_o victory_n aloud_o a_o hopeful_a disputant_n who_o chase_v rather_o to_o run_v upon_o such_o rock_n etc._n etc._n what_o rock_n do_v he_o mean_a i_o hope_v none_o of_o the_o acro●eraunia_n those_o ridiculous_a thing_n which_o he_o call_v rock_n be_v soapy_a bubble_n of_o his_o own_o blow_v this_o inference_n be_v none_o of_o i_o but_o his_o own_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o this_o great_a pretender_n to_o sincerity_n to_o miss_v one_o paragraph_n without_o falsification_n give_v he_o leave_v to_o make_v inference_n and_o periphrasis_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v and_o africa_n do_v never_o abound_v so_o much_o with_o monster_n as_o he_o will_v make_v the_o most_o rational_a writing_n in_o this_o world_n abound_v with_o absurdity_n i_o desire_v the_o courteous_a reader_n to_o view_v the_o place_n and_o either_o to_o pity_v his_o ignorance_n or_o detest_v his_o impudence_n the_o word_n which_o i_o answer_v be_v these_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n actual_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n in_o all_o those_o country_n which_o keep_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o very_a year_n when_o this_o unhappy_a separation_n begin_v my_o answer_n be_v that_o this_o assertion_n do_v come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o truth_n in_o one_o respect_n for_o the_o pope_n exercise_v much_o more_o power_n in_o those_o country_n which_o give_v they_o leave_v than_o ever_o st_n peter_n pretend_v to_o here_o be_v no_o other_o inference_n but_o this_o the_o pope_n exercise_v more_o power_n than_o ever_o st._n peter_n pretend_v to_o therefore_o this_o assertion_n that_o he_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n come_v short_a of_o the_o truth_n which_o consequence_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v admit_v neirhe_a denial_n or_o doubt_v what_o have_v this_o to_o do_v with_o his_o whole_a be_v less_o than_o the_o part_n or_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v the_o less_o but_o now_o suppose_v i_o have_v say_v whole_a as_o he_o make_v i_o to_o say_v on_o his_o own_o head_n that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o whole_a be_v less_o than_o the_o part_n or_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v the_o less_o what_o have_v he_o to_o carp_v at_o have_v he_o never_o hear_v or_o read_v that_o in_o morality_n the_o half_a be_v more_o than_o the_o whole_a have_v he_o forget_v his_o ethic_n that_o he_o who_o swerve_v from_o the_o mean_a or_o strict_a measure_n of_o virtue_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o excess_n or_o in_o the_o defect_n be_v alike_o culpable_a and_o commethshort_a of_o his_o duty_n if_o the_o pope_n as_o successor_n to_o s._n peter_n do_v usurp_v more_o power_n then_o s._n peter_n have_v right_a to_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n can_v call_v it_o the_o actual_a exercise_v of_o s._n peter_n power_n the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n be_v universal_a that_o as_o the_o pope_n exercise_v more_o power_n than_o be_v due_a to_o he_o in_o some_o place_n where_o he_o can_v get_v leave_n so_o in_o other_o place_n no_o less_o than_o three_o part_n of_o four_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a church_n his_o universal_a monarchy_n which_o he_o claim_v be_v universal_o reject_v for_o this_o i_o be_o first_o revile_v be_v moderate_a expression_n of_o shamelessness_n sufficient_a to_o character_n this_o man_n etc._n etc._n if_o better_a be_v within_o better_a will_v come_v out_o but_o stultis_fw-la the_o saurus_fw-la iste_fw-la est_fw-la in_o linguasitus_fw-la ut_fw-la discant_fw-la male_a loqui_fw-la melioribus_fw-la and_o then_o when_o he_o have_v first_o censure_v i_o he_o attempt_v to_o answer_v i_o as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v able_a that_o the_o pope_n exercise_v his_o power_n over_o they_o by_o excommunicate_v they_o as_o revolter_n as_o revolter_n in_o good_a time_n they_o be_v christian_n and_o have_v governor_n of_o their_o own_o before_o either_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o never_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o subject_n until_o this_o day_n nor_o regard_v his_o excommunicatious_a upon_o that_o score_n at_o all_o if_o they_o be_v revolter_n the_o apostolical_a age_n and_o all_o succeed_v age_n be_v join_v in_o the_o revolt_n these_o be_v his_o rigorous_a demonstration_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n single_a jurisdiction_n by_o divine_a right_n from_o his_o own_o impotent_a action_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n by_o divine_a right_n he_o have_v it_o over_o the_o world_n but_o that_o we_o see_v evident_o he_o never_o enjoy_v from_o the_o beginning_n if_o he_o do_v do_v not_o enjoy_v it_o universal_o from_o the_o beginning_n then_o certain_o it_o can_v be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o do_v begin_v with_o the_o eastern_a church_n because_o their_o case_n be_v plain_a as_o have_v protopatriarchs_a of_o their_o own_o and_o apostolical_a church_n of_o their_o own_o but_o when_o that_o be_v once_o acknowledge_v i_o shall_v be_v content_v to_o join_v issue_n with_o he_o in_o the_o west_n first_o for_o our_o britannic_a church_n and_o next_o even_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o that_o the_o pope_n universal_a monarchy_n and_o plenitude_n of_o sovereign_a power_n by_o divine_a right_n be_v neither_o deliver_v from_o parent_n to_o child_n by_o perpetual_a tradition_n as_o a_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n nor_o receive_v by_o the_o son_n of_o that_o individual_a church_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n which_o we_o do_v not_o oppose_v nor_o yet_o those_o accession_n of_o humane_a power_n which_o christian_a emperor_n and_o ecumenical_a counsel_n have_v confer_v upon_o that_o see_v provide_v they_o be_v not_o exact_v as_o a_o divine_a right_n his_o first_o movership_n and_o
his_o first_o governourship_n be_v but_o general_a unsignificant_a term_n which_o may_v agree_v as_o well_o to_o a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n or_o primacy_n of_o order_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a monarchy_n or_o plenitude_n of_o power_n if_o he_o will_v say_v any_o thing_n to_o purpose_n he_o must_v say_v it_o particular_o particular_n begin_v the_o breach_n particular_n must_v stop_v rhe_n breach_n i_o have_v give_v he_o a_o account_n what_o particular_a difference_n we_o have_v with_o he_o concern_v st._n peter_n what_o particular_a difference_n we_o have_v with_o he_o concern_v the_o pope_n let_v he_o apply_v himself_o to_o those_o and_o not_o make_v continual_a excursion_n as_o he_o do_v out_o of_o the_o list_n when_o i_o acknowledge_v a_o authority_n due_a to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n in_o the_o church_n pope_n as_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n as_o a_o metropolitan_a in_o his_o province_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a see_v and_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n i_o expect_v thanks_n there_o be_v many_o that_o will_v not_o yield_v he_o one_o inch_n of_o all_o these_o step_n without_o a_o new_a conflict_n but_o behold_v the_o evil_a nature_n or_o evil_a manner_n of_o this_o age_n i_o be_o accuse_v for_o this_o of_o frivolousnesse_n and_o insincerity_n yet_o i_o will_v make_v bold_a to_o tell_v this_o apprentice_n in_o theology_n 498._o that_o whensoever_o the_o case_n come_v to_o be_v solid_o discuss_v it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o the_o principal_a ground_n if_o i_o have_v say_v the_o only_a ground_n i_o have_v not_o say_v much_o amiss_o of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a monarchy_n be_v the_o just_a right_n and_o privilege_n of_o his_o patriarchateship_n his_o protopatriarchateship_n and_o his_o apostolical_a chair_n mistake_v for_o royalty_n for_o want_v of_o good_a distinction_n i_o know_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v accustom_v in_o these_o latter_a time_n to_o milk_n the_o purse_n of_o their_o client_n do_v not_o love_v such_o a_o dry_a primacy_n as_o he_o phrase_v it_o but_o where_o they_o have_v no_o more_o right_a and_o other_o church_n have_v a_o care_n to_o preserve_v their_o own_o privilege_n they_o must_v have_v patience_n perforce_o his_o parallel_n between_o the_o king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o pope_n power_n will_v be_v then_o to_o some_o purpose_n when_o he_o have_v first_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o monarchy_n until_o than_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n what_o a_o gross_a solecism_n that_o be_v in_o logic_n he_o can_v choose_v but_o know_v but_o since_o he_o be_v favourable_o please_v to_o dispense_v with_o all_o man_n for_o the_o extent_n of_o papal_a power_n so_o they_o believe_v the_o substance_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o he_o himself_o either_o can_v or_o dare_v not_o determine_v what_o the_o substance_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v he_o may_v out_o of_o his_o charity_n have_v compassion_n and_o not_o style_v we_o mountebank_n who_o know_v no_o difference_n between_o roman_a catholik_o and_o ourselves_o about_o the_o papacy_n but_o only_o about_o the_o extent_n of_o papal_a power_n although_o he_o style_v we_o heretic_n now_o yet_o he_o be_v late_o one_o of_o we_o himself_o and_o will_v have_v continue_v so_o long_o if_o he_o have_v understand_v himself_o better_a or_o the_o time_n be_v less_o cloudy_a let_v he_o call_v it_o substance_n let_v he_o call_v it_o extent_n let_v he_o call_v it_o what_o he_o will_v i_o have_v give_v he_o our_o exception_n to_o their_o papacy_n let_v he_o satisfy_v they_o as_o well_o as_o he_o ●an_v and_o let_v truth_n prevail_v we_o have_v not_o ●enounced_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o papacy_n except_o the_o substance_n the_o papacy_n do_v consist_v ●n_o coactive_a power_n i_o side_n with_o no_o party_n ●ut_v honour_n the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o welcome_a truth_n wheresoever_o i_o meet_v it_o tros_n tyriusve_fw-la mihi_fw-la nullo_n discrimine_fw-la habetur_fw-la he_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o i_o grant_v the_o whole_a question_n where_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v authority_n all_o over_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o ●n_o apostolical_a church_n or_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n much_o good_a may_v it_o do_v he_o as_o if_o every_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n be_v straight_o way_n a_o universal_a monarch_n or_o as_o if_o authority_n do_v always_o necessary_o imply_v jurisdiction_n or_o every_o arbitrator_n or_o depositary_a be_v a_o legal_a judge_n i_o have_v reason_n to_o place_v a_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n in_o my_o climax_n after_o a_o patriarch_n for_o the_o large_a extension_n of_o his_o authority_n every_o where_o not_o for_o the_o high_a intention_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n any_o where_o i_o urge_v that_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v succeed_v st._n peter_n by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o privilege_n to_o be_v the_o prince_n and_o sovereign_a of_o the_o church_n endow_v with_o a_o single_a sovereignty_n of_o power_n that_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v much_o to_o be_v blame_v to_o give_v equal_a privilege_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o esteem_v the_o imperial_a city_n more_o than_o the_o ordination_n of_o christ._n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o this_o argument_n that_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v ground_n the_o advancement_n both_o of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n upon_o the_o imperial_a dignity_n of_o those_o two_o city_n and_o to_o much_o more_o which_o be_v urge_v there_o against_o he_o he_o be_v as_o mute_a as_o a_o fish_n but_o to_o the_o former_a part_n he_o answer_v that_o for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a rome_n may_v remain_v superior_a in_o jurisdiction_n though_o they_o have_v equal_a privilege_n very_o pretty_a indeed_o he_o will_v have_v his_o reader_n to_o believe_v that_o a_o sovereign_n and_o his_o subject_n have_v equal_a privilege_n equal_v have_v no_o power_n one_o over_o another_o there_o may_v be_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n among_o equal_v but_o supremacy_n of_o power_n take_v away_o equality_n do_v not_o he_o himself_o make_v it_o to_o be_v s._n peter_n privilege_n to_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o do_v not_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o privilege_n descend_v from_o s._n peter_n upon_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v equal_a to_o he_o in_o this_o privilege_n which_o descend_v from_o s._n peter_n equal_a let_v he_o listen_v to_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n where_o have_v repeat_v and_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 28._o they_o conclude_v thus_o for_o the_o nicene_n father_n do_v just_o give_v privilege_n to_o the_o see_v of_o old_a rome_n because_o it_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n and_o the_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o godly_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n move_v with_o the_o same_o consideration_n do_v give_v equal_a privilege_n to_o the_o see_v of_o new_a rome_n right_o judge_v that_o that_o city_n which_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o senate_n shall_v enjoy_v equal_a privilege_n with_o the_o ancient_a imperial_a city_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v extol_v and_o magnify_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o well_o as_o it_o be_v the_o second_o in_o order_n from_o it_o and_o in_o the_o last_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n upon_o the_o review_n of_o of_o the_o cause_n the_o archbishop_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n of_o constantinople_n or_o new_a rome_n must_v enjoy_v the_o same_o privilege_n of_o honour_n and_o have_v the_o same_o power_n out_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o ordain_v metropolitans_n in_o the_o asiatic_a pontic_a and_o thracian_a diocese_n that_o be_v as_o much_o in_o law_n as_o to_o say_v have_v equal_a jurisdiction_n for_o all_o other_o right_n do_v follow_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n but_o he_o know_v right_a well_o that_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n his_o last_o refuge_n be_v to_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v no_o free_a act_n but_o vote_v tumultuous_o after_o most_o of_o the_o father_n be_v depart_v and_o miscal_v it_o a_o bastard_n issue_v pin_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v altogether_o as_o false_a as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v it_o be_v do_v before_o the_o bishop_n have_v their_o licence_n to_o depart_v it_o have_v a_o sec●nd_a hear_n and_o be_v debate_v by_o the_o pope_n own_o legate_n on_o his_o behalf_n before_o the_o most_o glorious_a judge_n and_o mature_o sentence_v by_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o four_o
he_o peradventure_o never_o read_v it_o but_o what_o do_v he_o think_v of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n who_o profess_v themselves_o every_o where_o to_o be_v qualify_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n tam_fw-la in_o capite_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o membris_fw-la as_o well_o in_o the_o head_n as_o in_o the_o member_n they_o escape_v fair_o if_o he_o do_v not_o censure_v they_o as_o protestant_n for_o they_o be_v great_a reformer_n and_o they_o be_v no_o great_a papist_n place_v the_o sovereign_a power_n under_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o in_o the_o first_o mover_n i_o may_v well_o call_v the_o reformation_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o time_n their_o reformation_n the_o papist_n reformation_n rather_o than_o we_o if_o the_o reformer_n be_v more_o papist_n then_o protestant_n as_o it_o most_o evident_a i_o press_v he_o that_o if_o the_o renunciation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n absolute_a universal_a monarchy_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n be_v the_o essence_n of_o a_o protestant_n than_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v all_o protestant_n he_o answer_v it_o be_v flatsy_v false_a i_o be_o content_v to_o be_v silent_a for_o the_o present_a but_o when_o time_n serve_v it_o may_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o be_v flat_o true_a and_o that_o all_o that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v attribute_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v no_o more_o they_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n and_o that_o a_o absolute_a monarchy_n by_o christ_n ordination_n be_v absolute_o repugnant_a to_o the_o primitive_a discipline_n i_o proceed_v then_o all_o the_o grecian_a russian_a armenian_a abyssen_n christian_n be_v protestant_n this_o day_n he_o answer_v that_o it_o it_o be_v partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a and_o serve_v only_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v fellow_n schismatic_n and_o why_o partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a when_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o all_o these_o church_n do_v disow_v and_o disclaim_v the_o pope_n monarchy_n this_o be_v just_a the_o old_a condemn_a tenet_n of_o the_o schismatical_a donatist_n who_o do_v most_o uncharitable_o limit_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o their_o own_o party_n exclude_v all_o other_o from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o romanist_n do_v now_o the_o best_a be_v we_o must_v stand_v or_o fall_v to_o our_o own_o master_n but_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o have_v lose_v one_o of_o the_o note_n of_o their_o church_n that_o be_v multitude_n for_o they_o exclude_v three_o or_o four_o time_n more_o christian_n out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n than_o they_o admit_v into_o it_o i_o proceed_v yet_o high_a than_o we_o want_v not_o store_n of_o protestant_n even_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o his_o answer_n be_v that_o to_o speak_v moderate_o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a falsehood_n and_o a_o plain_a impossibility_n for_o whosoever_o renounce_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o his_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n become_v total_o disunite_v from_o the_o church_n good_a word_n his_o groundwork_n be_v to_o weak_a to_o support_v the_o weight_n of_o such_o a_o heavy_a accusation_n a_o primacy_n of_o order_n imply_v a_o headship_n as_o well_o as_o supremacy_n of_o power_n neither_o be_v it_o destitute_a of_o all_o power_n it_o have_v some_o power_n essential_o annex_v to_o it_o to_o congregate_v sub_fw-la paena_fw-la purè_fw-la spirituali_fw-la to_o propose_v to_o give_v sentence_n according_a to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o college_n it_o may_v have_v a_o accessary_a power_n to_o execute_v the_o canon_n according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o counsel_n and_o imperial_a sanction_n and_o confirmation_n but_o all_o this_o come_v far_o short_a of_o that_o headship_n which_o he_o assert_v a_o sovereign_n monarchical_a headship_n of_o absolute_a power_n above_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o christ_n ordination_n this_o be_v that_o headship_n which_o he_o maintain_v against_o i_o every_o where_o this_o be_v that_o headship_n which_o the_o primitive_a church_n never_o acknowledge_v this_o be_v that_o headship_n which_o the_o grecian_n russian_n armenian_n abyssine_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n renounce_v at_o this_o day_n this_o be_v that_o headship_n which_o many_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n who_o live_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o believe_v as_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n and_o pisa_n the_o school_n of_o sorbon_n and_o very_o many_o other_o every_o where_o who_o do_v all_o reject_v it_o some_o more_o some_o less_o the_o main_a difference_n and_o almost_o the_o whole_a difference_n between_o he_o and_o i_o be_v concern_v coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n over_o the_o subject_n of_o other_o prince_n against_o their_o will_n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v universal_o believe_v throughout_o all_o place_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n that_o it_o be_v practical_o receive_v in_o few_o or_o no_o place_n further_o than_o it_o seem_v expedient_a to_o sovereign_a prince_n if_o the_o pope_n himself_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o absolute_a sovereignty_n of_o monarchical_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n how_o can_v he_o alienate_v it_o from_o his_o successor_n almost_o whole_o to_o the_o prince_n of_o sicily_n and_o to_o their_o heir_n for_o ever_o within_o that_o kingdom_n or_o how_o can_v the_o prince_n retain_v it_o if_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n of_o france_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v such_o a_o absolute_a monarchical_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n how_o can_v the_o king_n of_o france_n forbid_v the_o pope_n legate_n without_o his_o licence_n or_o restrain_v their_o legantine_n commission_n by_o his_o parliament_n or_o swear_v they_o to_o act_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n and_o to_o cease_v to_o execute_v their_o commission_n whensoever_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v prohibit_v they_o or_o reject_v papal_a decree_n further_o than_o they_o be_v receive_v in_o that_o kingdom_n or_o if_o the_o council_n of_o brabant_n do_v believe_v it_o how_o can_v they_o forbid_v the_o subject_n to_o repair_v to_o rome_n out_o of_o their_o own_o country_n upon_o the_o pope_n summons_n all_o man_n know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o privilege_n or_o prescription_n against_o christ_n own_o ordination_n qui_fw-la pauca_fw-la considerate_a facile_fw-la pronunciat_fw-la this_o be_v ever_o the_o end_n of_o his_o contradiction_n last_o he_o charge_v i_o for_o omit_v to_o answer_v to_o his_o reason_n 522_o that_o the_o renounce_v the_o pope_n be_v essential_a to_o protestantisme_n true_o i_o neither_o do_v nor_o do_v hold_v it_o worth_a answer_v can_v he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o whole_a essence_n of_o any_o thing_n and_o one_o essential_a he_o may_v as_o well_o affirm_v that_o he_o who_o believe_v but_o one_o article_n of_o his_o creed_n be_v a_o christian._n this_o require_v no_o great_a skill_n to_o explicate_v it_o but_o i_o have_v remit_v this_o controversy_n to_o the_o reader_n as_o fit_a for_o his_o determination_n sect._n iii_o that_o henry_n the_o 8._o make_v no_o new_a law_n but_o only_o vindicate_v the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o england_n christian_n reader_n thou_o have_v see_v hitherto_o how_o mr._n serjeant_n have_v fail_v altogether_o to_o make_v good_a his_o pretension_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o those_o great_a mountain_n of_o absurdity_n and_o falsification_n and_o contradiction_n which_o he_o promise_v have_v produce_v nothing_o worthy_a of_o so_o weighty_a a_o cause_n or_o a_o ingenious_a scholar_n but_o his_o own_o wilful_a ridiculous_a mistake_n we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o his_o three_o section_n wherein_o thou_o may_v see_v this_o young_a phaeton_n mount_v in_o his_o triumphant_a chariot_n drive_v the_o poor_a bishop_n as_o a_o captive_n before_o he_o now_o expect_v to_o see_v he_o tumble_v down_o headlong_o with_o a_o fall_n answerable_a to_o his_o height_n of_o pride_n and_o insolence_n he_o profess_v himself_o willing_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o award_n of_o the_o most_o partial_a protestant_a living_n who_o have_v so_o much_o sincerity_n as_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n or_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v both_o be_v and_o not_o be_v at_o once_o if_o after_o this_o loud_a confident_a brag_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v any_o thing_n good_a that_o be_v of_o weight_n against_o i_o he_o have_v forfeit_v either_o his_o judgement_n or_o his_o ingenuity_n and_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v a_o writer_n of_o controversy_n i_o need_v no_o partial_a judge_n but_o appeal_v to_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n of_o what_o communion_n soever_o he_o be_v he_o need_v but_o to_o compare_v my_o vndication_n his_o answer_n my_o reply_n his_o rejoinder_n and_o my_o
second_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a statute_n themselves_o those_o term_n of_o law_n which_o declare_v old_a law_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o those_o which_o enact_v new_a law_n this_o proof_n be_v demonstrative_a he_o urge_v if_o there_o be_v something_o new_a it_o be_v new_a and_o a_o statute_n we_o englishman_n use_v to_o term_v a_o law_n so_o if_o he_o new_o turn_v his_o coat_n there_o be_v something_o new_a yet_o we_o english_a man_n say_v his_o coat_n be_v and_o old_a coat_n for_o all_o that_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la or_o the_o great_a charter_n of_o england_n be_v a_o old_a law_n yet_o it_o have_v be_v renew_v or_o new_o declare_v by_o almost_o every_o succeed_a king_n new_a statute_n may_v declare_v old_a law_n he_o say_v i_o cite_v two_o protestant_n fitz-herbert_n and_o my_o lord_n cook_n both_o of_o my_o own_o party_n to_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o protestant_n i_o cite_v no_o protestant_n as_o protestant_n nor_o to_o speak_v for_o protestant_n nor_o as_o witness_n in_o any_o case_n in_o difference_n between_o protestant_n and_o papist_n but_o i_o cite_v two_o great_a english_a judge_n as_o judge_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o difference_n between_o a_o declarative_a statute_n and_o a_o enactive_a statute_n by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n and_o who_o can_v be_v so_o proper_a witness_n of_o the_o law_n of_o england_n as_o they_o second_o who_o tell_v he_o that_o fitzherbert_n be_v a_o protestant_n no_o more_o a_o protestant_n then_o himself_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o ever_o i_o can_v perceive_v he_o be_v a_o great_a judge_n live_v in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n time_n and_o write_v sundry_a work_n where_o he_o set_v down_o the_o charge_n against_o a_o papist_n he_o do_v it_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o it_o can_v hurt_v no_o man_n except_o he_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o have_v do_v what_o he_o do_v obstinate_o and_o malicious_o 129._o but_o where_o he_o set_v down_o the_o charge_n of_o a_o justice_n of_o peace_n against_o heretic_n or_o lollard_n he_o give_v it_o home_o but_o mr._n serjeant_n have_v the_o art_n to_o make_v protestant_n or_o papist_n of_o who_o he_o list_v so_o it_o serve_v his_o present_a turn_n three_o though_o fitzherbert_n and_o my_o lord_n cook_n have_v say_v nothing_o yet_o the_o case_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n that_o this_o very_a statute_n be_v declarative_a of_o old_a fundamental_a law_n not_o enactive_a of_o new_a law_n and_o this_o i_o prove_v first_o by_o view_n of_o the_o statute_n itself_o he_o that_o have_v but_o half_a a_o eye_n in_o his_o head_n may_v easy_o discern_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o enactive_a statute_n and_o a_o declarative_a statute_n a_o enactive_a statute_n look_v only_o forward_a to_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o meddle_v not_o at_o all_o with_o the_o time_n past_a but_o a_o declarative_a law_n look_v both_o way_n backward_o and_o forward_o forward_o to_o the_o time_n to_o come_v and_o backward_o to_o the_o time_n past_a again_o the_o very_a from_o and_o tenor_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o a_o enactive_a statute_n and_o in_o a_o declarative_a statute_n a_o enactive_a statute_n regard_v only_o what_o shall_v be_v but_o a_o declarative_n regard_v what_o be_v and_o what_o have_v be_v a_o enactive_a statute_n creat_v new_a law_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a lawgiver_n a_o declarative_a statute_n confirm_v old_a law_n and_o be_v common_o ground_v upon_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n 12._o now_o then_o let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o this_o very_a law_n by_o divers_a old_a authentic_a history_n and_o chronicle_n it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o this_o realm_n of_o england_n in_o a_o empire_n and_o so_o have_v be_v accept_v in_o the_o world_n govern_v by_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o king_n etc._n etc._n unto_o who_o a_o body_n politic_a compact_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o degree_n of_o people_n divide_v by_o name_n of_o spiritualty_n and_o temporalty_n owe_v next_o to_o god_n a_o natural_a obedience_n he_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n with_o plenary_a power_n to_o render_v final_a justice_n for_o all_o matter_n you_o see_v plain_o that_o this_o statute_n look_v both_o way_n forward_o and_o backward_o and_o do_v not_o only_o create_v new_a law_n but_o also_o declare_v what_o have_v be_v what_o be_v and_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o perpetual_a law_n of_o england_n by_o diverse_a old_a authentic_a history_n and_o chronicle_n it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v &c._n &c._n than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v a_o declarative_a law_n he_o say_v i_o quote_v the_o schismatical_a king_n himself_o and_o the_o schismatical_a parliament_n to_o speak_v in_o their_o own_o behalf_n by_o his_o leave_n he_o be_v mistake_v i_o ground_n not_o my_o reason_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n but_o upon_o the_o form_n or_o tenor_n of_o the_o statute_n whether_o these_o word_n do_v contain_v the_o form_n of_o a_o enactive_a statute_n or_o a_o declarative_a statute_n second_o if_o i_o do_v so_o yet_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o complain_v of_o it_o who_o make_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n to_o be_v the_o last_o judge_n in_o his_o own_o case_n three_o i_o shall_v be_v bold_a to_o serve_v up_o this_o pin_n a_o note_n high_o and_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o henry_n the_o eight_o do_v make_v himself_o the_o last_o judge_n in_o those_o difference_n between_o he_o and_o the_o papacy_n which_o concern_v the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n he_o do_v no_o more_o than_o many_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n have_v do_v before_o he_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o empire_n spain_n italy_n brabant_n etc._n etc._n four_o if_o that_o which_o be_v decree_v in_o this_o law_n be_v decree_v in_o former_a law_n stand_v in_o full_a force_n and_o unrepealed_a than_o it_o be_v not_o enactive_a of_o new_a law_n but_o declarative_a of_o old_a law_n but_o i_o have_v produce_v he_o the_o law_n themselves_o wherein_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n have_v be_v decree_v and_o he_o turn_v his_o back_n upon_o they_o and_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o canonist_n for_o a_o answer_n last_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v true_a that_o those_o statute_n make_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v new_a law_n tha●_n those_o ancient_a statute_n of_o clarendon_n of_o carlisle_n the_o article_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n be_v no_o new_a law_n when_o they_o be_v make_v but_o new_a declaration_n of_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o england_n or_o of_o the_o original_a constitution_n of_o the_o english_a empire_n as_o appear_v undeniable_o by_o the_o statute_n of_o clarendon_n the_o statute_n of_o carlisle_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o provisor_n wherein_o the_o same_o truth_n be_v affirm_v as_o positive_o as_o i_o can_v do_v it_o but_o now_o reader_n will_v thou_o see_v a_o convince_a proof_n of_o the_o extreme_a carelessness_n and_o unconscionable_a oscitance_n of_o this_o great_a champion_n who_o write_v his_o answer_n at_o random_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o read_v what_o be_v object_v against_o he_o i_o cite_v two_o statute_n the_o one_o of_o 24._o hen._n 8._o cap._n 12._o the_o other_o of_o 16_o ric._n 2._o cap._n 5._o the_o printer_n cit_v they_o right_a i●_n the_o margin_n but_o a_o little_a confuse_o but_o when_o mr._n serjeant_n come_v to_o answer_v they_o he_o confound_v they_o indeed_o attribute_v richard_n the_o second_o statute_n to_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o lest_o any_o man_n shall_v excuse_v he_o and_o say_v it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o printer_n hear_v he_o he_o allege_v another_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o 24._o of_o henry_n the_o 8_o yes_o well_o guess_v otherwise_o call_v the_o 16._o of_o richard_n the_o second_o and_o a_o little_a after_o what_o matter_n it_o what_o this_o statute_n say_v be_v make_v two_o year_n after_o his_o unlawful_a marriage_n with_o anna_n bullen_n i_o know_v not_o where_o he_o learn_v this_o except_o it_o be_v from_o the_o old_a puppet_n player_n who_o will_v have_v queen_n dido_n to_o be_v richard_n the_o three_o mistress_n he_o may_v perchance_o have_v such_o another_o odd_a fancy_n that_o richard_n the_o second_o be_v anne_n boulogne_n servant_n that_o which_o i_o observe_v in_o earnest_n be_v this_o that_o he_o answer_v at_o random_a to_o he_o know_v not_o what_o and_o never_o peruse_v that_o which_o be_v object_v against_o he_o if_o it_o have_v be_v some_o rare_a piece_n that_o be_v cite_v that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v come_v by_o it_o it_o have_v be_v the_o more_o pardonable_a but_o it_o be_v a_o english_a statute_n which_o he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o every_o bookebinders_n shop_n in_o every_o lawyer_n study_n in_o every_o justice_n
reject_v be_v the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n or_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o such_o rigorous_a demonstration_n but_o depend_v upon_o testimony_n which_o logician_n call_v a_o inartificiall_a way_n of_o argue_v but_o if_o by_o rigorous_a demonstration_n he_o understand_v convince_a proof_n those_o ground_n which_o i_o offer_v in_o this_o section_n do_v contain_v a_o rigorous_a demonstration_n that_o discipline_n which_o be_v brimful_a of_o intolerable_a rapine_n and_o extortion_n and_o simony_n and_o sacrilege_n which_o rob_v king_n and_o subject_n ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a of_o their_o just_a right_n which_o be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o have_v a_o malignant_a influence_n upon_o the_o body_n politic_a which_o be_v destructive_a to_o the_o right_a end_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o in_o stead_n of_o secure_v man_n in_o peace_n do_v thrust_v they_o into_o manifest_a and_o manifold_a danger_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o general_n counsel_n and_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o particular_a church_n qua_fw-la talis_fw-la as_o it_o be_v such_o be_v no_o legacy_n of_o christ_n but_o aught_o to_o be_v purge_v and_o reform_v from_o all_o such_o abuse_n and_o usurpation_n but_o such_o be_v that_o papal_a discipline_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n exercise_v in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o less_o than_o which_o they_o will_v not_o go_v and_o such_o be_v all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o assertion_n i_o have_v make_v manifest_a in_o my_o vindication_n c._n 6_o and_o this_o be_v the_o place_n of_o a_o further_a examination_n of_o it_o if_o he_o do_v discharge_v the_o part_n of_o a_o fair_a solid_a disputant_n to_o leave_v his_o windy_a invective_n which_o signify_v nothing_o to_o the_o cause_n but_o to_o his_o own_o shame_n and_o to_o proceed_v close_o and_o ingenuous_o to_o the_o investigation_n of_o truth_n without_o prejudice_n or_o partiality_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o mince_v my_o ground_n and_o conceal_v they_o and_o skip_v over_o whatsoever_o dislike_v he_o and_o chop_v they_o and_o change_v they_o and_o confound_v they_o that_o i_o can_v know_v my_o own_o conception_n again_o as_o he_o have_v dress_v they_o and_o disorder_v they_o and_o mutilate_v they_o i_o propose_v five_o distinct_a ground_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o cast_v out_o so_o many_o branch_n as_o we_o do_v of_o papal_a power_n if_o he_o deal_v like_o a_o just_a adversary_n he_o shall_v pursue_v my_o method_n step_v by_o step_n but_o he_o reduce_v my_o five_o ground_n into_o three_o that_o between_o two_o method_n he_o may_v conceal_v and_o smother_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v no_o disposition_n to_o answer_v as_o he_o deal_v with_o many_o point_n of_o weight_n and_o moment_n and_o particular_o with_o all_o those_o testimony_n and_o instance_n i_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o intolerable_a extortion_n and_o manifold_a usurpation_n and_o malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n upon_o the_o body_n politic_a and_o ecclesiastic_a be_v much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o my_o discourse_n but_o i_o do_v not_o altogether_o blame_v he_o for_o they_o be_v so_o foul_a that_o a_o man_n can_v find_v small_a credit_n or_o contentment_n in_o defend_v they_o for_o once_o rather_o then_o loose_v his_o company_n i_o will_v pursue_v his_o method_n let_v we_o give_v he_o the_o hear_n he_o reduce_v my_o five_o ground_n to_o three_o first_o such_o as_o entrench_v upon_o eternity_n and_o conscience_n may_v not_o any_o heretic_n object_n that_o the_o church_n impose_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n or_o complain_v of_o new_a creed_n when_o she_o add_v to_o her_o public_a profession_n some_o point_n of_o faith_n hold_v former_o may_v not_o he_o complain_v of_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n as_o your_o brother_n puritan_n do_v for_o surplesses_n &_o c_o may_v not_o he_o pretend_v that_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v good_a christian_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v tyrannical_a in_o hold_v they_o for_o excommunicate_v may_v he_o not_o shuffle_v together_o faith_n with_o opinion_n and_o false_o allege_v as_o you_o do_v here_o you_o be_v force_v to_o approve_v the_o pope_n rebellion_n against_o general_n counsel_n and_o take_v oath_n to_o maintain_v papal_a usurpation_n this_o be_v all_o the_o answer_v i_o get_v of_o this_o brave_a disputant_n as_o if_o the_o unjust_a complaint_n of_o the_o puritan_n do_v satisfy_v the_o just_a exception_n of_o the_o protestant_n it_o be_v probable_a enough_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v one_o of_o our_o brother_n puritan_n in_o those_o day_n otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o well_o have_v talk_v so_o wild_o of_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n from_o surplesses_n his_o discourse_n be_v so_o sleight_n and_o impertinent_a that_o i_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v any_o answer_n but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o reader_n to_o compare_v my_o vindication_n and_o reply_n with_o his_o rejoinder_n that_o they_o have_v add_v new_a essentials_n to_o faith_n be_v full_o evince_v against_o they_o in_o this_o treatise_n sect._n 1._o cap._n 11._o what_o our_o judgement_n be_v concern_v their_o idolatry_n he_o shall_v find_v exact_o set_v down_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o militier_fw-fr pa._n 133._o as_o for_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n which_o every_o bishop_n must_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o may_v satisfy_v himself_o sect._n 1._o cap._n 5._o and_o see_v the_o from_o of_o it_o cap_n 7._o or_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v a_o late_a form_n let_v he_o take_v this_o i_o henry_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n will_v be_v faithful_a and_o obedient_a to_o st._n peter_n from_o this_o hour_n as_o former_o 66._o and_o to_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o my_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n the_o six_o and_o his_o successor_n i_o will_v give_v no_o counsel_n nor_o consent_n nor_o act_v any_o thing_n towards_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o life_n or_o member_n or_o liberty_n i_o will_v discover_v their_o counsel_n to_o no_o man_n to_o their_o prejudice_n which_o they_o have_v communicate_v to_o i_o by_o themselves_o or_o their_o messenger_n i_o will_v help_v they_o to_o retain_v and_o defend_v the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o the_o royalty_n of_o st._n peter_n save_v my_o order_n against_o all_o man_n i_o will_v entertein_a the_o pope_n legate_n honourable_o go_v and_o come_v and_o help_v they_o in_o their_o necessity_n i_o will_v visit_v the_o papal_a court_n every_o year_n if_o it_o be_v on_o this_o side_n the_o alps_n and_o every_o two_o year_n if_o it_o beyond_o the_o alps_n unless_o the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o i_o so_o help_v i_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a gospel_n what_o fidelity_n can_v a_o king_n expect_v from_o a_o subject_a who_o have_v take_v this_o oath_n if_o the_o pope_n please_v to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o if_o the_o pope_n superiority_n above_o a_o general_n council_n be_v but_o hold_v as_o a_o indifferent_a opinion_n in_o their_o church_n and_o not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o intimate_v yet_o it_o be_v such_o a_o opinion_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o contradict_v it_o be_v fere_n communis_fw-la it_o be_v almost_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o roman_a catholic_n if_o bellarmine_n say_v true_a and_o fere_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la almost_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n upon_o which_o modern_a pope_n and_o counsel_n be_v accord_v it_o be_v determine_v express_o in_o their_o last_o general_n council_n of_o lateran_n 11._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o have_v authority_n over_o all_o counsel_n be_v these_o all_o the_o ground_n he_o can_v find_v which_o entrench_v upon_o eternity_n and_o conscience_n he_o may_v have_v find_v more_o that_o by_o mean_n of_o papal_a abuse_n there_o describe_v hospitality_n be_v not_o keep_v the_o poor_a not_o sustain_v the_o word_n not_o preach_v 1245._o church_n not_o adorn_v the_o cure_n of_o soul_n neglect_v divine_a office_n not_o perform_v church_n ruin_v he_o may_v have_v find_v oath_n custom_n write_n grant_n statute_n right_n privilege_n to_o have_v be_v not_o only_o weaken_v but_o exinanit_v by_o the_o pope_n infamous_a messenger_n call_v non_fw-la obstance_n and_o all_o this_o attest_v by_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o the_o whole_a commonwealth_n of_o england_n but_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n whether_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o or_o not_o while_o he_o answer_v nothing_o he_o faith_n my_o second_o sort_n of_o ground_n be_v those_o which_o relate_v to_o temporal_a inconvenience_n and_o injury_n to_o the_o state_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a encroachment_n which_o i_o huddle_n together_o in_o big_a term_n do_v i_o huddle_n they_o together_o nay_o i_o handle_v they_o distinct_o under_o three_o head_n or_o notion_n first_o the_o intolerable_a
because_o no_o reason_n do_v permit_v that_o such_o a_o assembly_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o a_o imperial_a city_n without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o place_n three_o because_o general_n counsel_n be_v make_v then_o at_o the_o public_a charge_n he_o may_v have_v add_v that_o counsel_n do_v receive_v their_o protection_n from_o emperor_n and_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o counsel_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o emperor_n in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o err_v in_o this_o also_o that_o we_o have_v take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o assemble_v general_n counsel_n we_o have_v take_v away_o no_o power_n from_o the_o pope_n of_o convocate_a any_o synod_n except_o only_a synod_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n subject_n within_o his_o own_o dominion_n without_o his_o leave_n which_o bellarmine_n himself_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o reason_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o right_n either_o to_o convocate_v general_n counsel_n himself_o or_o to_o represent_v to_o christian_a sovereign_n the_o fit_a season_n for_o convocation_n of_o they_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n or_o of_o his_o protopatriarchate_n we_o do_v not_o envy_v it_o to_o he_o since_o there_o may_v be_v a_o good_a use_n of_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o good_a caution_n be_v observe_v bellarmine_n confess_v that_o that_o power_n which_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v that_o though_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a monarch_n but_o only_o chief_a of_o the_o principal_a patriarch_n yet_o the_o right_a to_o convocate_v general_n counsel_n shall_v pertein_a unto_o he_o 12._o but_o it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v more_o than_o mr._n serjeant_n do_v know_v my_o last_o ground_n be_v the_o exemtion_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n from_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n by_o the_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n as_o to_o the_o exemtion_n of_o the_o britannic_a church_n he_o refer_v himself_o to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v former_o and_o so_o do_v i._o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n he_o answer_v that_o howsoever_o cyprus_n and_o some_o other_o be_v exempt_v from_o a_o neighbour_a superior_a false_o pretend_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o yet_o i_o shall_v never_o show_v a_o syllable_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n exemt_a from_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n as_o head_n of_o the_o church_n not_o direct_o a_o man_n may_v safe_o swear_v it_o for_o the_o council_n never_o suspect_v it_o the_o world_n never_o dream_v of_o it_o the_o pope_n themselves_o never_o pretend_v to_o any_o such_o headship_n of_o power_n and_o universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o those_o day_n all_o that_o the_o primitive_a pope_n claim_v by_o divine_a right_n be_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n due_a to_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n all_o that_o they_o claim_v by_o humane_a right_n be_v some_o privilege_n partly_o gain_v by_o custom_n or_o prescription_n and_o partly_o grant_v by_o the_o father_n to_o to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n because_o it_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n but_o there_o be_v enough_o in_o this_o very_a canon_n collateral_o to_o overthrow_v all_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o britain_n shall_v be_v name_v particular_o where_o all_o the_o province_n without_o exception_n be_v comprehend_v let_v the_o same_o be_v observe_v in_o other_o diocese_n and_o in_o all_o province_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v express_v where_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v prohibit_v that_o no_o bishop_n occupy_v another_o province_n which_o former_o and_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o under_o the_o power_n of_o he_o or_o his_o predecessor_n if_o the_o father_n be_v so_o tender_a of_o pride_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n or_o of_o the_o danger_n to_o lose_v their_o christian_a liberty_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n who_o pretend_v neither_o to_o divine_v right_a nor_o universal_a jurisdiction_n what_o will_v they_o have_v say_v or_o do_v in_o the_o present_a case_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o challenge_v not_o only_o patriarchall_a but_o sovereign_a jurisdiction_n not_o over_o cyprus_n only_o but_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n not_o from_o custom_n or_o canon_n but_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n if_o master_n sergeant_n be_v in_o the_o right_a then_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n be_v quite_o out_o to_o sue_v for_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o cyprus_n which_o belong_v more_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o to_o he_o then_o the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n be_v quite_o o●t_a to_o challenge_v the_o ordination_n of_o themselves_o and_o jurisdiction_n over_o one_o another_o as_o a_o proper_a right_o belong_v to_o themselves_o which_o they_o hold_v only_o by_o courtesy_n and_o favour_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o the_o holy_a synod_n be_v quite_o out_o to_o determine_v so_o positive_o that_o not_o only_a cyprus_n but_o every_o province_n shall_v enjoy_v its_o right_n and_o custom_n inviolated_a which_o it_o have_v from_o the_o beginning_n without_o a_o salvo_n or_o save_v the_o right_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o a_o restriction_n so_o long_o as_o he_o please_v to_o permit_v they_o and_o to_o do_v it_o in_o such_o imperial_a term_n it_o have_v please_v the_o holy_a synod_n or_o such_o be_v our_o pleasure_n last_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v out_o to_o ratify_v the_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n of_o the_o cyprian_a bishop_n not_o only_o from_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n but_o from_o himself_o also_o and_o to_o suffer_v his_o divine_a right_n to_o be_v trample_v under_o foot_n by_o custom_n and_o canon_n which_o be_v of_o no_o force_n without_o he_o but_o this_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o passage_n in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o pope_n pretension_n of_o a_o general_n monarchy_n the_o eastern_a church_n do_v still_o adhere_v firm_o to_o the_o primitive_a discipline_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o pope_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o excommunicate_v they_o si_fw-mi violandum_fw-la jus_o est_fw-la regnandi_fw-la causâ_fw-la violandum_fw-la est_fw-la against_o all_o our_o ground_n the_o most_o intolerable_a extortion_n that_o ever_o be_v hear_v of_o most_o grievous_a usurpation_n malignant_a influence_n both_o upon_o the_o state_n politic_a and_o ecclesiastic_a and_o undoubted_a privilege_n he_o produce_v nothing_o but_o immediate_a tradition_n and_o you_o must_v be_v content_a to_o take_v his_o bare_a word_n for_o it_o for_o he_o be_v altogether_o unfurnished_a of_o proof_n some_o man_n by_o tell_v strange_a story_n over_o and_o over_o do_v come_v at_o last_o to_o believe_v they_o it_o may_v be_v he_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o tradition_n for_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o cast_v out_o but_o we_o deny_v it_o altogether_o and_o require_v he_o to_o prove_v first_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o tradition_n in_o england_n next_o that_o a_o particular_a tradition_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o divine_a institution_n we_o admit_v ready_o that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o the_o break_n of_o it_o a_o heinous_a crime_n and_o that_o no_o abuse_n imaginable_a be_v sufficient_a excuse_n for_o a_o total_a desertion_n of_o a_o just_a power_n thus_o far_o in_o the_o thesis_n we_o agree_v but_o in_o the_o hypothesis_n we_o differ_v that_o which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o a_o reformation_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n for_o a_o extirpation_n so_o many_o so_o grievous_a so_o unconscionable_a extortion_n and_o usurpation_n and_o malignant_a influence_n as_o we_o complain_v of_o and_o prove_v be_v without_o all_o peradventure_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o reformation_n which_o be_v all_o our_o ancestor_n do_v or_o we_o defend_v though_o not_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o the_o extirpation_n of_o any_o just_a authority_n our_o ground_n be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o reformation_n of_o abuse_n and_o encroachment_n which_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o which_o be_v all_o we_o do_v at_o the_o reformation_n but_o for_o the_o abolition_n of_o any_o just_a power_n it_o be_v his_o fond_a imagination_n we_o disclaim_v it_o altogether_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o all_o papal_a coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n as_o be_v political_a not_o spiritual_a but_o for_o any_o papal_a jurisdiction_n either_o pure_o spiritual_a or_o just_o found_v we_o have_v not_o meddle_v with_o it_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o be_v only_a abuse_n and_o usurpation_n so_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o that_o consideration_n which_o he_o propose_v whether_o the_o abuse_n be_v otherwise_o remediable_a or_o not_o for_o our_o reformation_n be_v that_o very_a remedy_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v prescribe_v to_o
hold_v out_o encroachment_n with_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sword_n without_o any_o meddle_v with_o just_a right_n other_o division_n than_o this_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v allow_v we_o believe_v our_o ancestor_n intend_v none_o we_o hold_v none_o and_o so_o be_v accountable_a for_o none_o the_o main_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la subject_n to_o rome_n or_o not_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a already_o that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o have_v always_o their_o ordination_n at_o home_n but_o his_o conclusion_n which_o he_o put_v upon_o i_o that_o true_a complaint_n against_o governor_n whether_o otherwise_o remediable_a or_o no_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o abolish_v that_o very_a government_n be_v a_o vain_a assertion_n of_o his_o own_o no_o conclusion_n of_o i_o he_o start_v a_o question_n here_o little_a to_o his_o own_o credit_n whether_o he_o that_o maintain_v the_o negative_a or_o he_o that_o maintain_v the_o affirmative_a aught_o to_o prove_v he_o say_v according_a to_o his_o old_a pueriles_fw-la that_o a_o negative_a may_v be_v prove_v in_o logic_n no_o man_n doubt_v of_o it_o or_o deny_v it_o quis_fw-la e●im_fw-la potest_fw-la negare_fw-la i_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o in_o this_o case_n which_o come_v here_o in_o difference_n between_o we_o according_a to_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o law_n the_o burden_n to_o prove_v rest_v only_o on_o his_o side_n who_o affirm_v as_o the_o question_n be_v here_o between_o we_o whether_o we_o have_v other_o remedy_n then_o to_o make_v such_o a_o reformation_n as_o we_o do_v we_o say_v no._n they_o say_v yea._n it_o be_v possible_a to_o ●rove_v there_o may_v be_v other_o remedy_n ●ut_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o ●ther_a remedy_n galen_n or_o hypocrates_n himself_o will_v not_o have_v undertake_v such_o a_o task_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n for_o a_o disease_n then_o that_o which_o they_o use_v it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o logical_a form_n that_o negative_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v ●n_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o for_o want_v of_o sufficient_a medium_n he_o say_v he_o be_v no_o bowler_n and_o so_o ●nexpert_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o soal_v of_o a_o bowl_n it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v true_a but_o if_o i_o shall_v put_v he_o to_o prove_v this_o negative_a it_o be_v impossible_a but_o so_o far_o as_o a_o negative_a of_o that_o nature_n be_v capable_a of_o proof_n i_o do_v prove_v it_o by_o our_o address_n to_o pope_n and_o counsel_n and_o long_a expectation_n in_o vain_a that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o remedy_n then_o that_o which_o we_o use_v to_o thrust_v out_o their_o usurpation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o course_n he_o himself_o advise_v and_o we_o practise_v the_o division_n be_v not_o make_v by_o they_o who_o thrust_v out_o usurpation_n but_o by_o they_o who_o bring_v they_o in_o and_o defend_v they_o i_o say_v that_o not_o only_o our_o ancestor_n but_o all_o catholic_n country_n do_v maintain_v their_o own_o privilege_n inviolated_a and_o make_v themselves_o the_o last_o judge_n of_o their_o grievance_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n hence_o he_o conclude_v with_o open_a mouth_n therefore_o there_o be_v other_o remedy_n there_o need_v no_o division_n alas_o poor_a man_n how_o he_o trouble_v himself_o about_o nothing_o they_o and_o we_o use_v the_o very_a same_o remedy_n the_o same_o that_o he_o advise_v in_o this_o place_n the_o pope_n will_v not_o ease_v they_o upon_o many_o address_n make_v what_o then_o have_v not_o the_o king_n the_o sword_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n 571._o do_v it_o not_o lie_v in_o his_o power_n to_o right_v himself_o as_o he_o list_v and_o to_o admit_v those_o pretend_a encroachment_n only_o so_o far_o as_o he_o think_v just_a and_o fit_v yes_o the_o king_n have_v the_o sword_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o do_v right_v himself_o and_o cast_v out_o those_o papal_a usurpatious_a so_o far_o as_o he_o find_v just_o and_o now_o when_o we_o have_v follow_v your_o own_o advice_n you_o call_v we_o schismatic_n and_o divider_n sr._n we_o be_v no_o divider_n but_o we_o have_v do_v our_o duty_n and_o if_o we_o prove_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o cast_v out_o to_o be_v usurpation_n as_o we_o have_v do_v you_o be_v the_o schismatic_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n he_o plead_v if_o papal_a authority_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n than_o no_o just_a cause_n can_v possible_o be_v give_v for_o its_o abolishment_n right_o but_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o be_v neither_o of_o christ_n institution_n nor_o of_o man_n institution_n but_o mere_a usurpation_n neither_o do_v we_o seek_v to_o abolish_v papal_a authority_n but_o to_o reform_v it_o from_o accidental_a abuse_n and_o reduce_v it_o to_o its_o first_o institution_n the_o best_a institution_n divine_a or_o humane_a may_v sometime_o need_v such_o reformation_n here_o be_v nothing_o like_o proof_n but_o his_o world_n of_o witness_n and_o his_o immemoriall_n tradition_n presume_v not_o prove_v to_o show_v that_o no_o nation_n suffer_v so_o much_o as_o england_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n he_o say_v i_o produce_v nothing_o but_o the_o pleasant_a say_n of_o a_o certain_a pope_n well_o will_v he_o have_v a_o better_a witness_n against_o the_o pope_n than_o the_o pope_n himself_o habemus_fw-la confitentem_fw-la reum_fw-la he_o be_v pleasant_a indeed_o but_o ridentem_fw-la dicere_fw-la verum_fw-la quid_fw-la vetat_fw-la what_o hinder_v that_o a_o man_n may_v net_n tell_v the_o truth_n laugh_v he_o ask_v whether_o those_o testimony_n which_o i_o produce_v be_v demonstrative_a or_o rigorous_a evidence_n i_o think_v he_o will_v have_v i_o like_o the_o unskilful_a painter_n to_o write_v over_o the_o head_n of_o my_o argument_n this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n it_o will_v become_v he_o better_a to_o refute_v they_o and_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o demonstrative_a then_o to_o trifle_v away_o the_o time_n with_o such_o frivolous_a question_n i_o show_v that_o england_n be_v not_o alone_o in_o the_o separation_n so_o long_o as_o all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a northern_a and_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o western_a church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v separate_v by_o they_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o we_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o bid_v i_o show_v that_o those_o i_o call_v christian_n have_v any_o infallible_a or_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v first_o to_o hang_v man_n up_o and_o then_o to_o examine_v their_o cause_n first_o to_o excommunicate_v four_o part_n of_o five_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o their_o own_o interest_n because_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o roman_a yoke_n and_o embrace_v their_o upstart_n usurpation_n with_o as_o much_o devotion_n as_o the_o genuine_a legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o behove_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v weigh_v the_o case_n more_o mature_o before_o they_o give_v such_o a_o temerarious_a sentence_n against_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o cause_n but_o for_o their_o rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o authentic_a rule_n than_o he_o himself_o by_o as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v a_o more_o authentic_a rule_n of_o faith_n than_o pius_n the_o fourth_n creed_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o more_o infallible_a ground_n then_o particular_a supposititious_a tradition_n which_o want_v both_o perpetuity_n and_o universality_n i_o say_v that_o we_o desire_v to_o live_v in_o the_o peaceable_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o our_o ancestor_n as_o far_o as_o the_o roman_a court_n will_v give_v we_o leave_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o know_v very_o well_o we_o will_v be_v glad_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v own_v we_o for_o she_o &c_n &c_n that_o lack_v straw_n or_o wat_n tiler_n after_o they_o have_v rebel_v have_v no_o mind_n to_o be_v hang_v that_o it_o be_v no_o charity_n or_o courtesy_n in_o we_o but_o a_o request_n of_o a_o unreasonable_a favour_n from_o they_o to_o admit_v we_o into_o their_o communion_n and_o will_v be_v most_o absurd_a in_o government_n etc._n etc._n whether_o they_o hold_v we_o for_o they_o or_o not_o be_v not_o much_o material_a if_o they_o do_v it_o be_v the_o better_a for_o themselves_o if_o they_o do_v not_o it_o be_v not_o the_o worse_a for_o we_o so_o as_o christ_n own_v we_o for_o he_o it_o skill_v not_o much_o whether_o they_o say_v come_v you_o bless_v or_o go_v you_o curse_v whether_o we_o be_v the_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o although_o he_o snuff_v at_o
to_o pervert_v as_o many_o as_o they_o can_v not_o to_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o the_o lord_n field_n but_o to_o superseminare_fw-la or_o sow_v tare_n above_o the_o wheat_n we_o shall_v thank_v they_o more_o to_o stay_v at_o home_n then_o to_o compass_v sea_n and_o land_n to_o gain_v proselyte_n as_o the_o pharisee_n do_v and_o make_v they_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o themselves_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o solemn_a custom_n of_o their_o church_n every_o good_a friday_n let_v it_o be_v so_o but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o incentive_a and_o provocation_n which_o we_o have_v we_o do_v not_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v they_o the_o day_n before_o as_o they_o do_v we_o this_o advantage_n we_o have_v over_o they_o that_o we_o render_v blessing_n for_o curse_v which_o they_o do_v not_o he_o add_v that_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o heretic_n first_o because_o we_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o not_o heretical_a second_o they_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n already_o and_o therefore_o not_o reductble_a to_o his_o flock_n to_o the_o first_o ●_o answer_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v only_o material_o heretical_a not_o formal_o do_v still_o continue_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n understand_v these_o thing_n much_o better_o than_o himself_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o he_o in_o the_o place_n former_o allege_v 4._o a_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v real_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a and_o yet_o moral_o a_o true_a particular_a church_n because_o she_o be_v invincible_o ignorant_a of_o her_o heresy_n or_o schism_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o whole_o in_o the_o sense_n only_o we_o differ_v in_o the_o expression_n what_o he_o call_v real_o heretical_a we_o style_v material_o heretical_a and_o what_o he_o call_v moral_o a_o true_a church_n we_o use_v to_o style_v metaphysical_o a_o true_a church_n that_o be_v by_o truth_n of_o entity_n not_o of_o morality_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v various_o sometime_o more_o large_o sometime_o more_o strict_o more_o large_o for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v in_o domo_fw-la by_o outward_a profession_n more_o strict_o for_o those_o who_o be_v exit_fw-la domo_fw-la so_o in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v also_o of_o the_o church_n by_o inward_a sanctification_n and_o our_o collect_n have_v reference_n to_o this_o late_a acception_n of_o this_o word_n flock_n so_o fetch_v they_o home_o bless_v lord_n to_o thy_o floek_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v he_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o our_o church_n have_v change_v these_o word_n in_o the_o missal_n recall_v they_o to_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n into_o this_o dwindle_n pule_a puritanical_a expression_n of_o one_o floek_a and_o one_o fold_v under_o one_o shepheard_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o he_o have_v a_o pick_n against_o scripture_n phrase_n as_o sound_v too_o preacherlike_a or_o rather_o because_o our_o church_n do_v presume_v to_o name_v the_o right_a shepherd_n jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o gloss_n to_o entitle_v the_o pope_n to_o that_o office_n but_o certain_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o formidable_a at_o all_o to_o any_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o do_v ready_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o each_o orthodox_n church_n to_o excommunicate_v formal_a heretic_n and_o they_o who_o swerve_v from_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o do_v not_o oblige_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o excommunicate_v all_o material_a heretic_n who_o follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o their_o conscience_n in_o inferior_a question_n which_o be_v not_o essentials_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v hold_v the_o truth_n implicit_o in_o the_o preparation_n of_o their_o mind_n neither_o do_v i_o ever_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o excommunicate_a papist_n in_o gross_a qua_fw-la tale_n but_o only_o some_o particular_a papist_n who_o be_v either_o convict_v of_o other_o crime_n or_o find_v guilty_a of_o contumacy_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v use_v the_o same_o moderation_n and_o remember_v how_o ireneus_fw-la reprove_v pope_n victor_n that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v right_o to_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n 24._o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a churehe_n of_o god_n this_o be_v that_o great_a nonsense_n which_o this_o egregious_a prevaricatour_n have_v find_v in_o our_o collect_n that_o the_o english_a church_n can_v reconcile_v her_o doctrine_n and_o her_o practice_n together_o let_v he_o not_o trouble_v his_o head_n with_o that_o but_o rather_o how_o to_o recoucile_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o church_n he_o will_v have_v prayer_n to_o be_v only_a word_n no_o work_n but_o his_o church_n make_v prayer_n fast_v and_o alm_n 590_o to_o be_v three_o satisfactory_a work_n my_o three_o proof_n of_o our_o moderation_n be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o challenge_v a_o new_a church_n a_o new_a religion_n or_o new_a holy_a order_n but_o derive_v our_o church_n our_o religion_n our_o holy_a order_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n we_o obtrude_v no_o innovation_n upon_o other_o all_o this_o be_v quite_o omit_v by_o this_o great_a pretender_n to_o sincerity_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v or_o may_v know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v pretend_a reformer_n who_o have_v commit_v all_o these_o excess_n but_o he_o catch_v hold_v of_o two_o word_n of_o my_o defence_n that_o we_o have_v add_v no_o thing_n i_o wish_v they_o can_v say_v as_o much_o nor_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n but_o error_n to_o the_o former_a part_n he_o except_v that_o he_o who_o positive_o deny_v ever_o add_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o he_o take_v away_o he_o that_o make_v it_o a_o article_n there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o mass_n no_o prayer_n to_o saint_n have_v as_o many_o article_n as_o he_o who_o hold_v the_o contrary_a i_o have_v take_v away_o this_o answer_n before_o and_o demonstrate_v that_o no_o negative_a can_v be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n or_o necessary_a medium_fw-la of_o salvation_n because_o it_o have_v no_o entity_n that_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o great_a dispute_n and_o contradiction_n among_o themselves_o in_o theological_a question_n or_o in_o these_o thing_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la fide●_n materialiter_fw-la than_o those_o three_o be_v between_o we_o and_o they_o yet_o they_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o either_o the_o affirmative_n or_o negative_n be_v article_n of_o faith_n the_o christian_a church_n for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n know_v never_o more_o than_o 12._o old_a article_n of_o faith_n until_o pius_n the_o four_o add_v twelve_o new_a article_n and_o now_o this_o young_a pythagoras_n will_v make_v we_o more_o than_o 1200._o article_n affirmative_a article_n and_o negative_a article_n fundamental_a article_n and_o superstructive_a article_n every_o theological_a truth_n shall_v either_o be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n or_o a_o indifferent_a and_o unconcern_v opinion_n he_o say_v our_o 22._o article_n define_v the_o negative_a to_o purgatory_n yet_o i_o like_v a_o ill_a tutor_v child_n tell_v my_o old_a crazy_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o she_o lie_v 593._o i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n the_o reader_n know_v sufficient_o that_o his_o pen_n be_v no_o slander_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o ill_o it_o be_v when_o she_o beget_v he_o neither_o do_v i_o tell_v the_o church_n of_o england_n she_o lie_v nor_o dissent_v in_o the_o least_o from_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n neither_o do_v the_o church_n of_o england_n define_v any_o of_o these_o question_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v either_o necessitate_v med●i_fw-la or_o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la which_o be_v much_o less_o but_o only_o bind_v her_o son_n for_o peace_n sake_n not_o to_o oppose_v they_o but_o he_o himself_o can_v hardly_o be_v excuse_v from_o lie_v where_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o good_a simple_a minister_n do_v swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o perhaps_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o simple_a minister_n do_v he_o ever_o swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o do_v he_o ever_o know_v any_o man_n who_o do_v swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o for_o he_o to_o urge_v such_o falsehood_n after_o they_o have_v be_v so_o often_o detect_v be_v double_a effronterie_n periisse_fw-la puto_fw-la ●ui_fw-la pudor_fw-la periit_fw-la he_o infer_v further_a by_o the_o bishop_n logic_n these_o proposition_n that_o there_o be_v not_o two_o god_n that_o the_o devil_n shall_v not_o be_v save_v nor_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n damn_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o through_o christ_n must_v cease_v to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o
that_o authority_n which_o he_o do_v challenge_v and_o not_o wave_v the_o extent_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a if_o he_o challenge_v it_o out_o of_o prudentiall_a reason_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v whether_o the_o hope_n or_o the_o hazard_n the_o advantage_n or_o disadvantage_n the_o convenience_n or_o inconvenience_n of_o such_o a_o form_n of_o government_n particular_o circumstantiate_v do_v over_o balance_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o the_o sure_a trial_n of_o this_o be_v by_o experience_n it_o will_v trouble_v he_o to_o find_v so_o many_o advantage_n which_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n have_v receive_v from_o papal_a jurisdiction_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o key_n of_o order_n as_o may_v overweigh_v all_o those_o disadvantage_n which_o they_o have_v sustain_v by_o the_o extortion_n and_o usurpation_n and_o malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o papacy_n if_o he_o attribute_v no_o more_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n than_o all_o roman_a catholic_n universal_o do_v approve_v which_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n that_o he_o give_v we_o to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o papal_a authority_n he_o need_v not_o be_v so_o impetuous_a this_o question_n be_v near_o a_o end_n he_o ask_v whether_o we_o and_o the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a christian_n be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o patriarch_n or_o any_o other_o common_a government_n i_o answer_v we_o and_o they_o be_v under_o the_o same_o common_a government_n which_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v under_o from_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n long_o before_o there_o be_v any_o general_n counsel_n that_o be_v the_o government_n of_o bishop_n under_o primate_fw-la or_o patriarch_n for_o as_o i_o have_v say_v former_o a_o protarch_n and_o a_o patriarch_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v both_o one_o we_o have_v as_o much_o opportunity_n to_o convocate_v synod_n as_o they_o have_v then_o before_o there_o be_v christian_a emperor_n and_o more_o yet_o by_o such_o counsel_n as_o they_o can_v congregate_v though_o they_o be_v not_o general_n they_o govern_v the_o church_n if_o there_o be_v not_o that_o free_a communication_n of_o one_o church_n with_o another_o that_o be_v then_o either_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a distance_n or_o our_o mutual_a misunderstanding_n one_o of_o another_o for_o want_v of_o the_o old_a canonical_a epistle_n or_o literae_fw-la formatae_fw-la the_o more_o be_v the_o pity_n we_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o ready_a to_o contribute_v our_o uttermost_a endeavour_n to_o the_o remedy_n of_o it_o with_o these_o western_a church_n which_o have_v shake_v of_o the_o roman_a y●ke_n we_o have_v much_o more_o communion_n by_o synod_n by_o letter_n by_o publish_v our_o confession_n and_o we_o may_v just_o hope_v for_o a_o much_o near_a union_n yet_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n if_o god_n will_v be_v gracious_o please_v to_o restore_v a_o happy_a peace_n that_o we_o have_v it_o not_o already_o in_o so_o large_a a_o measure_n as_o we_o may_v be_v their_o only_a fault_n who_o will_v not_o give_v way_n to_o a_o vniform_a reformation_n sometime_o they_o accuse_v we_o for_o have_v too_o much_o communion_n with_o they_o at_o other_o time_n they_o will_v not_o grant_v we_o to_o have_v any_o at_o all_o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n which_o submit_v to_o the_o papacy_n we_o have_v the_o same_o rule_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n which_o they_o have_v we_o have_v the_o same_o that_o they_o have_v save_v their_o additionall_n error_n we_o have_v break_v no_o bond_n of_o unity_n either_o in_o faith_n or_o discipline_n we_o have_v renounce_v no_o just_a authority_n either_o divine_a or_o humane_a we_o adhere_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n into_o which_o alone_o all_o christian_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v baptize_v and_o we_o renounce_v the_o upstart_n additional_a article_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o we_o be_v willing_a for_o peace_n sake_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n the_o same_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o st._n peter_n have_v above_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n but_o the_o supremacy_n of_o power_n be_v not_o in_o st._n peter_n but_o in_o the_o apostolical_a college_n neither_o be_v now_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o in_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n he_o say_v we_o maintain_v a_o large_a brotherhood_n than_o they_o but_o never_o go_v about_o to_o show_v any_o visible_a tie_n of_o government_n we_o show_v they_o the_o same_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n of_o our_o christianity_n that_o be_v the_o same_o creed_n and_o the_o same_o discipline_n or_o government_n that_o be_v the_o same_o colour_n derive_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o discipline_n be_v tie_n enough_o to_o take_v a_o exact_a view_n it_o be_v necessary_a the_o organ_n shall_v be_v perfect_a the_o medium_fw-la fit_a and_o the_o distance_n convenient_a if_o any_o one_o of_o these_o be_v defective_a in_o mr._n ross_v view_n he_o may_v well_o mistake_v but_o i_o may_v not_o do_v he_o that_o wrong_v to_o trust_v your_o testimony_n without_o cite_v his_o word_n he_o urge_v if_o christ_n have_v leave_v any_o unity_n of_o government_n in_o his_o church_n and_o command_v it_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o we_o have_v take_v a_o course_n to_o leave_v no_o such_o unity_n than_o we_o have_v rebel_v against_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o false_o pretend_v to_o have_v he_o our_o spiritual_a head_n i_o admit_v this_o now_o let_v he_o assume_v but_o you_o protestant_n have_v take_v a_o course_n to_o leave_v no_o unity_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n leave_v and_o command_v to_o be_v keep_v i_o deny_v his_o assumption_n altogether_o and_o he_o say_v not_o one_o word_n to_o prove_v it_o this_o be_v his_o enthymematicall_a manner_n of_o argue_v he_o procee_v that_o to_o have_v a_o general_n council_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a head_n be_v to_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o ordinary_a unity_n of_o government_n in_o god_n church_n but_o extraordinary_a only_a when_o a_o council_n sit_v i_o deny_v this_o proposition_n altogether_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v evident_a because_o beside_o a_o general_n council_n which_o sit_v but_o rare_o neither_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o it_o shall_v sit_v often_o nisi_fw-la dignus_fw-la vindice_n nodus_fw-la inciderit_fw-la there_o be_v particular_a counsel_n which_o in_o lesser_a exigent_n serve_v the_o turn_n as_o well_o as_o general_n there_o be_v patriarch_n and_o bishop_n which_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_a in_o a_o aristocracy_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o governor_n shall_v be_v evermore_o actual_o assemble_v in_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_n counsel_n hold_v there_o be_v less_o hope_n of_o ever_o hold_v they_o then_o then_o now_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o ordinary_a unity_n of_o government_n in_o god_n ch●rch_n in_o those_o day_n for_o which_o they_o be_v not_o indebt_v at_o all_o to_o any_o visible_a monarch_n b●t_o when_o a_o general_n council_n do_v sit_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a power_n rest_v in_o it_o he_o wonder_v why_o i_o shall_v make_v the_o king_n only_o a_o political_a head_n contrary_a to_o our_o common_a assertion_n it_o seem_v that_o though_o he_o have_v be_v breed_v among_o we_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o be_v much_o verse_v in_o our_o author_n no_o man_n that_o ever_o understand_v himself_o make_v he_o otherwise_o yet_o this_o political_a head_n have_v a_o great_a influence_n upon_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o person_n in_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n he_o demand_v be_v there_o any_o orderly_a common_a tie_n of_o government_n oblige_v this_o head_n to_o correspond_v with_o the_o other_o head_n if_o not_o where_o be_v the_o unity_n i_o answer_v yes_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spiritual_a guide_n that_o be_v his_o bishop_n and_o synod_n if_o this_o method_n be_v so_o great_a a_o rarity_n with_o he_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n he_o have_v say_v more_o proper_o to_o correspond_v with_o the_o other_o head_n then_o head_n he_o say_v it_o be_v false_a to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v sometime_o two_o or_o three_o head_n since_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o true_a or_o right_o choose_v pope_n true_o but_o the_o election_n may_v be_v uncertain_a that_o no_o man_n live_a can_v know_v the_o true_a pope_n so_o whether_o there_o be_v three_o pope_n or_o one_o pope_n and_o two_o pretender_n yet_o if_o the_o right_a pope_n can_v be_v make_v appear_v it_o be_v all_o one_o relative_o to_o the_o church_n if_o the_o trumpet_n give_v a_o uncertain_a sound_n who_o shall_v prepare_v himself_o to_o the_o battle_n he_o tell_v we_o further_o that_o when_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v vacant_a the_o headship_n be_v
the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n that_o what_o i_o say_v be_v true_a and_o his_o accusation_n be_v groundless_a calumny_n but_o as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n he_o add_v that_o these_o unusual_a expression_n be_v only_o these_o that_o christ_n have_v two_o distinct_a person_n and_o no_o distinct_a nature_n thus_o he_o say_v but_o what_o author_n what_o authority_n do_v he_o produce_v that_o any_o of_o these_o church_n be_v guilty_a of_o any_o such_o expression_n none_o at_o all_o because_o for_o all_o his_o good_a intelligence_n he_o have_v none_o to_o produce_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v any_o and_o so_o his_o good_a intelligence_n must_v end_v in_o smoke_n and_o stink_n as_o his_o most_o faithful_a protestation_n do_v before_o i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n to_o his_o shame_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o english_a church_n art_n 2._o that_o the_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a be_v perfect_o and_o inseparable_o conjoin_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ._n do_v this_o agree_v with_o his_o counterfeit_a expression_n christ_n have_v two_o distinct_a person_n no_o distnct_a nature_n when_o i_o use_v this_o expression_n the_o best_o be_v we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n of_o the_o lord_n floor_n but_o their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o these_o word_n the_o best_o be_v have_v no_o such_o immediate_a relation_n unto_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n but_o to_o the_o last_n word_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o make_v this_o the_o complete_a sense_n we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n but_o the_o best_a be_v whether_o we_o be_v wheat_n or_o chaff_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o what_o poor_a boyish_a pickquer_a be_v this_o in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n occasional_o i_o show_v the_o agreement_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o great_a question_n agitate_a between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o cyrill_a late_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o but_o in_o requital_n urge_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o mr._n rosse_n in_o his_o book_n call_v a_o view_n of_o all_o religion_n it_o be_v a_o unequal_a match_n between_o mr._n rosse_n a_o private_a stranger_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o a_o cause_n concern_v his_o own_o church_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o mr._n rosse_n but_o leave_v he_o to_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v true_o cite_v or_o not_o but_o with_o mr._n serjeant_n i_o shall_v be_v bold_a to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o speak_v serious_o and_o bona_fw-la fide_fw-la he_o be_v mistake_v whole_o neither_o do_v the_o greek_n place_n much_o of_o their_o devotion_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o paint_a image_n 4._o hear_v cyrill_n the_o patriarch_n we_o give_v leave_v to_o he_o that_o will_v to_o have_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n but_o we_o disallow_v the_o adoration_n and_o worship_n of_o they_o as_o prohibit_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o another_o they_o give_v great_a honour_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n the_o mother_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o neither_o adore_v she_o nor_o implore_v her_o aid_n and_o for_o the_o intercession_n prayer_n help_v and_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n take_v the_o word_n merit_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o be_v not_o for_o desert_n but_o for_o acquisition_n i_o know_v no_o difference_n about_o they_o among_o those_o man_n who_o understand_v themselves_o but_o only_o about_o the_o last_o word_n which_o they_o invocate_v in_o their_o temple_n rather_o than_o church_n a_o comprecation_n both_o the_o grecian_n and_o we_o do_v allow_v a_o ultimate_a invocation_n both_o the_o grecian_n and_o we_o detest_v so_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o doctrine_n but_o they_o vary_v from_o it_o in_o their_o practice_n it_o follow_v they_o place_v justification_n not_o in_o faith_n but_o in_o work_n most_o false_o hear_v hieremy_n the_o patriarch_n 13._o we_o must_v do_v good_a work_n but_o not_o confide_v in_o they_o and_o cyrill_v his_o successor_n we_o believe_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n not_o work_n before_o we_o can_v determine_v for_o who_o those_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a christian_n be_v in_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v what_o the_o right_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v i_o have_v challenge_v they_o to_o go_v one_o step_n further_o into_o it_o then_o i_o do_v and_o they_o dare_v not_o or_o rather_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n the_o next_o instance_n concern_v purgatory_n be_v so_o gross_a and_o notorion_n a_o mistake_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n to_o confute_v it_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v better_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n which_o way_n be_v they_o better_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o damn_a be_v release_v or_o ease_v thereby_o the_o modern_a greek_n deny_v and_o so_o do_v we_o that_o there_o be_v any_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n to_o be_v help_v they_o deny_v and_o so_o do_v we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v help_v to_o the_o consummation_n of_o their_o blessedness_n and_o to_o a_o speedy_a union_n with_o their_o body_n by_o the_o resurrection_n thereof_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v no_o more_o do_v we_o we_o pray_v daily_o thy_o kingdom_n come_v and_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o and_o that_o we_o with_o this_o our_o brother_n and_o all_o other_o depart_v in_o the_o faith_n may_v have_v our_o perfect_a consummation_n and_o bless_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n they_o hate_v ecclesiastical_a tyranny_n and_o lie_v supposititious_a tradition_n so_o do_v we_o but_o if_o they_o be_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o genuine_a apostolical_a tradition_n god_n blessing_n on_o their_o heart_n so_o be_v we_o last_o the_o grecian_n know_v no_o feast_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la nor_o carry_v the_o sacrament_n up_o and_o down_o nor_o elevate_v it_o to_o be_v adore_v they_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o do_v we_o they_o do_v not_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n no_o more_o do_v we_o yet_o from_o hence_o he_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_o that_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n it_o be_v well_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o yet_o the_o grecian_n agree_v with_o we_o and_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o his_o two_o rule_n or_o bond_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n the_o grecian_n and_o we_o have_v the_o same_o government_n of_o bishop_n under_o patriarch_n and_o primate_fw-la second_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o grecian_n and_o we_o have_v both_o the_o same_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n both_o reject_v their_o apocryphal_a addition_n from_o the_o genuine_a canon_n they_o and_o we_o have_v both_o the_o same_o apostolical_a creed_n both_o reject_v the_o new_a addition_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o in_o sum_n they_o and_o we_o do_v both_o deny_v their_o transubstantiation_n their_o purgatory_n their_o justification_n by_o work_n in_o sensu_fw-la forensi_fw-la their_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n and_o supererogation_n their_o septenary_n number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n their_o image_n worship_n their_o pardon_n their_o private_a mass_n their_o half-communion_n and_o to_o be_v brief_a the_o grecian_n do_v renounce_v and_o reject_v all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o divine_a right_n as_o nilus_n say_v it_o be_v intolerable_a that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n since_o he_o have_v his_o dignity_n from_o the_o father_n second_o his_o legislative_a power_n as_o peter_z stewart_n vice-chancell_a of_o ingolstad_n witness_v that_o the_o grecian_n object_v it_o as_o a_o error_n to_o the_o latin_n that_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n commandment_n to_o be_v their_o canon_n and_o law_n three_o his_o judiciary_n power_n equal_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n or_o rather_o prefer_v he_o last_o his_o dispensative_a power_n accuse_v his_o pardon_n and_o dispensation_n as_o thing_n that_o open_v a_o ga●e_n to_o all_o kind_a of_o villainy_n i_o be_o glad_a that_o nilus_n be_v in_o his_o good_a grace_n to_o be_v style_v by_o he_o one_o of_o the_o grave_a bishop_n and_o author_n of_o that_o party_n for_o one_o moderate_a expression_n wherein_o he_o say_v no_o more_o than_o we_o say_v
have_v be_v trouble_v withal_o too_o often_o already_o i_o have_v do_v with_o mr._n sergeant_n rejoinder_n and_o have_v but_o one_o short_a request_n to_o the_o reader_n that_o if_o he_o meet_v with_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o treatise_n which_o be_v not_o become_v that_o gravity_n or_o civility_n which_o one_o scholar_n owe_v to_o another_o especial_o in_o theological_a inquisition_n sciat_fw-la responsum_fw-la non_fw-la dictum_fw-la esse_fw-la he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v hardly_o possible_a to_o answer_v so_o much_o petulance_n without_o some_o tartness_n for_o the_o future_a if_o mr._n serjeant_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v upon_o this_o subject_n let_v he_o say_v it_o logical_o and_o he_o will_v not_o have_v cause_n to_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v neglect_v but_o if_o he_o pursue_v this_o way_n of_o quibble_v and_o word_v which_o he_o complain_v of_o in_o other_o without_o a_o cause_n and_o practise_v himself_o i_o shall_v make_v bold_a to_o cull_v out_o and_o answer_v whatsoever_o i_o judge_v material_a and_o leave_v the_o rest_n to_o a_o young_a pen_n which_o will_v attend_v his_o motion_n finis_fw-la 2._o tim._n 2._o 24._o 1_o king_n 19_o 12._o judge_n 15._o 10._o pag._n 543._o schism_n disarm_v pag._n 306._o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o rule_n of_o government_n no_o controversy_n about_o st._n peter_n resp._n ad_fw-la apol_n bellarm_n ●_o 1._o cyprian_a de_fw-es unitate_fw-la eccles_n ep._n 52._o ad_fw-la anton_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ep._n 55._o ad_fw-la cornel_n io._n 20._o 21._o the_o ppe_n successor_n to_o saint_n peter_n but_o not_o by_o christ_n ordination_n conc._n sardic_n c._n 3._o conc._n chalce_v act_n 16._o epist._n conc._n afr._n ad_fw-la caelestin_a comment_n in_o epist._n synodal_n conc_fw-fr basil._n pa._n 31._o b._n idem_fw-la pag._n 40._o gerson_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la spirit_n animae_fw-la acta_fw-la con●_n primi_fw-la pisani_n impres_n lutet_fw-la 1612._o fol._n 69._o can._n lo._n l._n 6._o c._n 8_o cus._n concord_n catholl_a 2._o ca._n 34._o stap._n de_fw-fr principfid_v l._n 13_o ca._n 15._o so●o_o 4._o scent_n do_v 24._o cue_n 2._o art_n 5_o driedo_n de_fw-fr ecclesiast_n dog_n li._n 4._o c._n 3._o contar._n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la pont._n aen●_n silvius_n de_fw-fr gest._n bas._n conc._n li_z sleid._n li._n 9_o bish_n chalc_n survey_v cap._n 5._o schism_n disarmed_z pa._n 304._o bellar_n de_fw-fr rome_n pont●_n lib._n 4._o cap_n 4._o schism_n this_fw-mi pa._n 504._o schism_n this_fw-mi pa._n 504._o bell._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n l._n 2_o cap._n 12._o and_o lib._n 4._o ca._n 4._o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n no_o certain_a rule_n mat._n 15._o 6._o 1._o pet_n 1._o 18._o aug._n lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la donati●tistas_n cap._n 24_o apud_fw-la goldast_n const._n imper._n pa._n 29._o council_n delect_v card_n impr_fw-la lutet_fw-la p._n 1612_o &_o 140._o there_o be_v no_o tradition_n for_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o papacy_n beza_n defenf_n pag._n 153._o council_n constan._n sess._n 8._o mention_v of_o exception_n here_o impertinent_a schism_n dispat_o pag._n 477._o mat._n 15._o 13_o the_o first_o breach_n before_o henry_n the_o 8._o be_v bear_v every_o one_o involve_v in_o a_o schism_n be_v not_o a_o formal_a schtsmatick_n ezech._n 162._o ezech._n 18._o 2d_o we_o be_v not_o chargeable_a with_o the_o excess_n of_o our_o predecessor_n negative_a precedent_n prove_v more_o strong_o then_o affirmative_a negative_a precedent_n prove_v more_o strong_o then_o affirmative_a xxv_o hen._n 8._o ca._n 12._o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n not_o we_o what_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o 6._o 23._o hen._n 8._o cap._n 9_o 24._o hen._n 8._o ca._n 12._o 25_o he._n 8._o c._n 19_o 25._o he._n 8._o c._n 14._o 25._o h._n 8._o c._n 19_o 27._o h._n 8._o c._n 15._o 25._o he_o 8._o 26._o h_o 8._o cap._n 1._o 26._o h._n 8._o cap_n 3._o 28._o h._n 8._o ca._n 10._o 35._o he._n 8._o cap._n 5._o 35._o h._n 8._o cap_n 3._o 1._o el._n c._n 1._o luke_n 12._o 14._o 21_o hen._n 8._o ca._n 13._o conc._n basil._n sess._n 16_o in_o revoc_n bullae_fw-la 3._o 24._o hen._n 8_o cap_n 12._o conf._n delct_n card._n the_o true_a difference_n about_o the_o papacy_n to_o who_o thepatronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v greg._n lib._n 4._o regist●_n indict_v 13._o cap_n 78._o bell._n the_o cler_n lib._n 1._o ca._n 9_o apud_fw-la eadm●rum_fw-la &_o hoveden_n in_o hen._n 1._o plat._n in_o pasch._n 2._o mat._n par._n a_o 1229._o mat._n par._n m._n hen._n 3._o a_o 1345._o eadm_n lib_n 1._o pag._n 20._o eadm_n lib._n 1._o pag._n 18._o eadm_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 73._o ead._n mer._n in_o praefat_fw-la pag._n 2._o malms●_n de_fw-fr gest_n reg._n l._n 2._o cap._n 8._o the_o right_a to_o give_v bishop-ricks_n in_o england_n be_v the_o king_n the_o right_a to_o convocate_v english_a synod_n be_v the_o king_n polus_n de_fw-fr conc._n pa._n 70._o eadmor_n l._n 3._o p._n 58._o eadm_n l._n 5._o p._n 120._o 1._o cor._n 16._o 22._o gervasius_n do●robornensis_n synod●●_n francica_n 2._o tom._n conc._n pe●ri_n crab._n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la oath_n of_o allegiance_n due_a to_o king_n from_o clerk_n not_o due_a to_o the_o pope_n ridleys_n view_n of_o civil_a and_o eccles_n p._n 64._o apol._n pro_fw-la juram_fw-la fid_fw-we ca._n 56._o de_fw-fr elect_n &_o elect._n prote_v ca._n 4._o greg._n episi_fw-la l._n 10._o epist_n 30._o indic_n 5._o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la jurando_fw-la cap._n 4._o bell._n li._n de_fw-fr clerca_fw-la 28._o 25._o e●_n 3._o cap_n 4._o 6._o h._n 4._o cap._n 2._o 3._o ed._n 1._o ca._n 2._o 16._o ric._n 2._o c._n 4._o 25._o ed._n 3._o mat._n par._n anno_fw-la 1164._o hoveden_n ma._n par._n anno_fw-la 1945._o hect._n boet._n hist._n ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n usurp_v by_o the_o pope_n ma._n par._n an●_n 1229._o plat._n in_o vita_fw-la bonifaci_fw-la noni_fw-la turselin_n vita_fw-la vineislai_n council_n const._n edit_n petri_n crab._n p._n 1182_o ibidem_fw-la pag._n 1164._o sess._n 12_o 16._o con._n basil._n ses._n 21._o council_n late_a sub_fw-la leone_n 10._o ses._n 12._o cent._n gra._n vain_a cap._n 19_o apud_fw-la golda_v a_o 1522._o 24._o ed._n cap_n 1._o traicte_v des_fw-fr droit_fw-fr &_o libertee_n the_o l'_fw-fr eglise_fw-fr gallicane_n &_o pro_fw-la libertate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gallicanae_n adversus_fw-la romanam_fw-la aulam_fw-la defensio_fw-la parisiensis_fw-la curiae_fw-la the_o pope_n have_v no_o legislative_a power_n in_o england_n omnibus_fw-la christ_n monuarch_n pag._n 4._o 1._o eli._n c._n 1._o conc_n constan_n sess._n 39_o constit_fw-la justin._n cont_n antim_fw-la in_o sin_n 5_o hoveden_n act_n 15._o 25._o ma._n par._n a_o 1237._o flor._n wigorn_n a_o 1227._o 20._o h._n 3._o c._n 9_o 25._o e._n 1._o 27._o e._n 3._o 2._o h._n 4_o cap._n 3._o &_o 4._o 7._o h._n 4._o cap_n 6._o 15._o r._n 2._o cap_n 6._o 4._o h._n 4_o cap_n 12._o 2._o h._n 4._o cap_n 3._o &_o 4._o 2._o h._n 4._o c._n 3_o &_o 4._o gelas._n epist_n ad_fw-la faustum_n eadm_n l._n 4._o pa●_n 92._o eadm_n l._n 1._o pa●_n 6._o bell._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n l._n 5._o c._n 6._o the_o pope_n have_v no_o judiciary_n power_n in_o england_n bell._n de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 2._o the_o pope_n can_v receive_v no_o appeal_n from_o england_n malm._n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la pont._n angl._n l._n 1._o leg_n hen_n 1._o c._n 31_o mat._n par._n an_z 1164._o eadmee●us_a l._n 5._o p._n 113._o hove_n den_fw-mi a_fw-mi 119._o xxvij_o edw._n 3●_n of_o papal_a bull_n and_o excommunicaetion_n ma._n par._n anno_fw-la 1164._o hoved._n in_o hen._n ●_o 2._o 26._o ric._n 2._o cap._n 4._o 2._o hen._n 4._o c._n 4._o placit●_fw-la an._n 32_o &_o 34._o edw._n 1._o hoved._n an._n 1165._o ma._n par_fw-fr a_o 1164._o or_o papal_a legate_n eadmerus_fw-la l._n 5._o p._n 125._o ibid._n plat._n an._n 1._o he._n 7._o act_n and_o monument_n cypr._n ad_fw-la cornel._n ep._n 55._o of_o papal_a dispensation_n memorial_n de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr magestad_fw-es catolica_fw-la cap._n 6._o gervas_n dorber_n pag_n 1648._o spelm_fw-ge council_n pa._n 364._o etc._n etc._n ibid._n p._n 481._o lanf_n ep._n 32._o eadm_n l._n 3._o p._n 57_o 27._o edu._n 3_o mat._n pa._n a_o 1245._o exit_fw-la arch._n tur._n londin_n exit_fw-la antiq_n acad_n cantab._n pa._n 91._o 6._o hen._n 4._o cap._n 1._o apol._n card._n bell._n contra_fw-la praef_n monit_fw-la p._n 66._o epist._n cler._n leod._n contrae_fw-la pasch._n 2._o in_o 2._o tom_n conc._n bell._n ibid._n bern._n ep._n 56._o bern._n serm._n 65._o in_o cant._n joseph_n mede_n de_fw-fr numeris_fw-la danielis_fw-la plat._n in_o vita_fw-la greg._n 7._o our_o law_n meddle_v not_o with_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n 28._o hen._n 8._o cap._n 10._o 35._o hen._n 8._o cap._n 5._o 1._o cor._n 4._o 21._o 1._o cor_fw-la 1._o 12._o joh._n 20._o 21._o act._n 15_o 28._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o